Selected quad for the lemma: saint_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
saint_n church_n holy_a relic_n 1,462 5 10.0599 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15093 The way to the true church wherein the principall motiues perswading according to Romanisme and questions touching the nature and authoritie of the church and scriptures, are familiarly disputed, and driuen to their issues, where, this day they sticke betweene the Papists and vs: contriued into an answer to a popish discourse concerning the rule of faith and the marks of the church. And published to admonish such as decline to papistrie of the weake and vncertaine grounds, whereupon they haue ventured their soules. Directed to all that seeke for resolution: and especially to his louing countrimen of Lancashire. By Iohn White minister of Gods word at Eccles. For the finding out of the matter and questions handled, there are three tables: two in the beginning, and one in the end of the booke. White, John, 1570-1615. 1608 (1608) STC 25394; ESTC S101725 487,534 518

There are 44 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

forma_fw-la iuramenti_fw-la professionis_fw-la fidei_fw-la bull_n which_o call_v it_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o orthodoxal_a faith_n to_o be_v vniformly_n observe_v and_o profess_v rome_n profess_v the_o new_a creed_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i._o n._n do_v with_o firm_a faith_n believe_v and_o profess_v all_o and_o singular_a thing_n contain_v in_o the_o creed_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n use_v namely_o i_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o in_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n bear_v of_o his_o father_n before_o all_o world_n god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v who_o for_o we_o man_n and_o for_o our_o salvation_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v incarnate_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o be_v make_v man_n crucify_v also_o for_o we_o under_o pontius_n pilate_n suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o shall_v come_v again_o with_o glory_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a who_o kingdom_n shall_v have_v no_o end_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o lord_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v who_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o i_o believe_v one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n i_o believe_v one_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o i_o look_v for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v amen_n the_o apostolic_a and_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n and_o other_o observance_n and_o constitution_n of_o that_o church_n do_v i_o firm_o admit_v and_o embrace_v also_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n according_a to_o that_o sense_n which_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_n who_o right_a it_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v i_o admit_v neither_o will_v i_o ever_o receive_v and_o expound_v it_o but_o according_a to_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n i_o do_v also_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n institute_v by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n though_o all_o be_v not_o for_o every_o man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v baptism_n confirmation_n the_o eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n order_n and_o marriage_n and_o that_o they_o confer_v grace_n and_o that_o among_o these_o baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n can_v be_v reiterated_a without_o sacrilege_n also_o the_o receive_a and_o approve_a rite_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n use_v in_o the_o solemn_a administration_n of_o all_o the_o aforesaid_a sacrament_n i_o receive_v and_o admit_v all_o and_o every_o the_o thing_n which_o concern_v original_a sin_n and_o justification_n be_v define_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n i_o embrace_v and_o receive_v also_o i_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n a_o true_a proper_a and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o soul_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesu_n christ_n and_o that_o there_o be_v make_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n which_o conversion_n the_o catholic_n church_n call_v transubstantiation_n i_o confess_v also_o that_o under_o one_o kind_a only_a all_o &_o whole_a christ_n and_o the_o true_a sacrament_n be_v receive_v i_o do_v constant_o hold_v there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o the_o soul_n detain_v there_o be_v help_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o likewise_o that_o the_o saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o pray_v unto_o and_o that_o they_o offer_v their_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o that_o their_o relic_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o most_o firm_o i_o avouch_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n always_o a_o virgin_n and_o other_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o retain_v and_o that_o to_o they_o due_a honour_n and_o veneration_n be_v to_o be_v give_v also_o that_o the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o i_o affirm_v the_o use_n thereof_o to_o be_v most_o wholesome_a to_o christ_n people_n that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n i_o acknowledge_v and_o i_o vow_v and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n likewise_o do_v i_o undoubting_o receive_v and_o confess_v which_o be_v deliver_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o general_a counsel_n and_o especial_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trident_n and_o withal_o i_o condemn_v reject_v and_o accurse_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a hereunto_o and_o all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o condemn_v reject_v and_o accurse_a by_o the_o church_n and_o that_o i_o will_v be_v careful_a this_o true_a catholic_a faith_n out_o of_o the_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v which_o at_o this_o time_n i_o willing_o profess_v and_o true_o hold_v be_v constant_o with_o god_n help_n retain_v and_o confess_v whole_a and_o inviolate_a to_o the_o last_o gasp_n and_o by_o those_o that_o be_v under_o i_o or_o such_o as_o i_o shall_v have_v charge_n over_o in_o my_o call_n hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o my_o power_n i_o the_o say_v n._n promise_v vow_v &_o swear_v so_o god_n i_o help_n and_o his_o holy_a gospel_n the_o schoolman_n &_o lawyer_n be_v long_o ago_o in_o hand_n with_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v a_o new_a creed_n and_o because_o they_o be_v long_o temper_v with_o it_o and_o the_o affirmative_a seem_v a_o strange_a position_n we_o marvel_v what_o they_o will_v make_v of_o it_o but_o now_o we_o see_v they_o mean_v in_o good_a earnest_n indeed_o and_o this_o belike_o be_v the_o creed_n whereof_o the_o pope_n be_v with_o child_n and_o all_o his_o church_n must_v receive_v it_o this_o be_v a_o strange_a presumption_n that_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o bring_v new_a matter_n of_o faith_n into_o the_o church_n and_o to_o make_v that_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o salvation_n which_o before_o be_v not_o so_o yet_o their_o people_n shall_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o observe_v it_o suarez_n the_o jesuit_n 30._o jesuit_n tom._n 2._o p._n 30._o the_o matter_n may_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o without_o any_o new_a &_o explicate_v revelation_n the_o church_n may_v have_v sufficient_a motive_n for_o the_o define_n of_o this_o or_o that_o verity_n by_o the_o enfold_v and_o still_o revelation_n of_o god_n for_o this_o manner_n of_o define_v whereby_o that_o which_o be_v not_o before_o be_v now_o make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o any_o supernatural_a verity_n be_v infold_o contain_v in_o tradition_n or_o scripture_n that_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n often_o explicate_v tradition_n and_o declare_v scripture_n increase_v the_o church_n at_o the_o length_n may_v bring_v in_o her_o determination_n which_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o certain_a divine_a revelation_n in_o respect_n of_o us._n this_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n may_v so_o increase_v that_o at_o the_o length_n she_o may_v simple_o and_o absolute_o define_v it_o this_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o think_v the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o make_v a_o new_a creed_n and_o hereby_o the_o world_n may_v see_v that_o under_o pretence_n of_o thing_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n increase_v the_o pope_n may_v multiply_v the_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o fit_a in_o the_o conscience_n as_o he_o please_v 16_o it_o be_v no_o small_a grief_n to_o all_o that_o be_v well_o mind_v to_o see_v this_o more_o than_o egyptian_a bondage_n whererein_o so_o many_o people_n live_v but_o yet_o if_o any_o man_n look_v attentive_o upon_o it_o the_o matter_n will_v not_o seem_v
think_v this_o a_o fit_a course_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n 8._o alexandrinus_n niceph._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o say_v of_o himself_o that_o he_o use_v sometime_o to_o be_v occupy_v in_o read_v the_o writing_n and_o treatise_n of_o heretic_n though_o it_o something_o pollute_v his_o mind_n with_o touch_v their_o unclean_a opinion_n because_o he_o reap_v this_o profit_n thereby_o that_o he_o may_v the_o easy_o refel_v they_o and_o the_o more_o execrate_v &_o detest_v they_o if_o any_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o confute_v i_o the_o law_n of_o christian_a conference_n special_o in_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n bound_v he_o 1._o to_o do_v it_o temperate_o abstain_v from_o rail_v and_o reproach_v 2._o perspicuous_o that_o i_o may_v certain_o know_v his_o meaning_n 3._o honest_o that_o what_o i_o say_v be_v faithful_o set_v down_o and_o what_o i_o prove_v my_o say_n by_o be_v not_o dissemble_v for_o i_o affirm_v nothing_o that_o concern_v the_o cause_n but_o i_o prove_v it_o either_o in_o the_o text_n by_o reason_n or_o in_o the_o margin_n by_o authority_n which_o i_o will_v not_o have_v dissemble_v or_o according_a to_o a_o usual_a trade_n take_v up_o of_o late_a among_o they_o traduce_v with_o taunt_n and_o outcry_n as_o if_o it_o be_v false_a allege_v until_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o indeed_o which_o if_o he_o perform_v i_o shall_v think_v my_o lot_n the_o better_a to_o have_v meet_v with_o so_o profitable_a a_o adversary_n and_o so_o wish_v the_o good_a reader_n that_o with_o love_n to_o all_o man_n and_o reverence_n to_o god_n truth_n and_o care_v to_o lead_v a_o sanctify_a life_n he_o will_v pursue_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n i_o take_v my_o leave_n beseech_v our_o lord_n christ_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o truth_n in_o all_o our_o heart_n amen_n a_o table_n of_o the_o several_a matter_n and_o question_n handle_v and_o dispute_v in_o this_o book_n the_o first_o number_n signify_v the_o section_n note_v with_o this_o mark_n §._o the_o other_o follow_v the_o first_o signify_v the_o number_n of_o that_o section_n where_o the_o number_n be_v but_o one_o there_o the_o whole_a section_n be_v mean_v the_o true_a faith_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 1._o 1._o no_o part_n of_o our_o faith_n stand_v upon_o tradition_n 1._o 2._o enfold_v faith_n be_v not_o sufficient_a without_o knowledge_n 2._o 1._o 7._o there_o be_v a_o rule_n whereby_o the_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v know_v 3._o 1._o this_o rule_n be_v not_o visible_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n 3._o 2._o the_o property_n belong_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 4._o the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o english_a be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o how_o 5._o the_o true_a reason_n why_o papist_n deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n 5._o 7._o 8._o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o mother_n tongue_n that_o the_o people_n may_v read_v it_o 5._o 9_o touch_v the_o certainty_n and_o truth_n of_o our_o translation_n and_o how_o we_o know_v it_o 6._o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n 6._o 9_o 10._o our_o english_a translation_n be_v pure_a than_o that_o which_o the_o papist_n use_v 6._o 11._o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n disable_v it_o not_o from_o be_v the_o rule_n 7._o 1._o all_o matter_n needful_a be_v plain_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n 7._o 3._o why_o the_o papist_n pretend_v the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n 7._o 7._o whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a 8._o 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v understand_v by_o itself_o and_o how_o 8._o 1_o 2_o 3._o how_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v it_o among_o many_o sense_n 8._o 7_o 8._o the_o true_a cause_n why_o man_n err_v in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 8._o 13._o our_o faith_n be_v build_v on_o the_o scripture_n not_o on_o the_o church_n 8._o 17._o the_o scripture_n be_v perfect_a contain_v all_o thing_n 9_o how_o i_o know_v this_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n 9_o 5._o all_o thing_n needful_a be_v full_o comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n 9_o 9_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n vari_v with_o the_o time_n 9_o 11._o again_o touch_v the_o error_n of_o man_n in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 10._o the_o place_n of_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o prove_v the_o all-sufficiencie_n of_o the_o scripture_n 11._o how_o private_a man_n &_o private_a company_n may_v see_v the_o truth_n against_o a_o multitude_n 12._o by_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n mean_v nothing_o but_o the_o pope_n 13._o 2._o whether_o and_o how_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v err_v 14._o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o expound_v how_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n 15._o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n at_o any_o time_n fail_v &_o be_v not_o 17._o 1._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v the_o visiblenesse_n of_o the_o church_n 17._o 2._o the_o protestant_n say_v no_o more_o touch_v the_o invisiblenesse_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o papist_n themselves_o in_o effect_n do_v 17._o 3._o the_o argument_n be_v answer_v whereby_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v always_o visible_a 18._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o true_a faith_n be_v a_o sufficient_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n 24._o 2._o the_o argument_n against_o this_o be_v answer_v 26._o to_o 31._o 1._o joh._n 4.1_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o examine_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n 31._o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a be_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 32._o what_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n proper_o be_v 33._o 1._o the_o protestant_a church_n want_v not_o true_a unity_n 33._o 2._o god_n true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v have_v some_o contention_n 33._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o protestant_a church_n have_v the_o true_a mean_n of_o unity_n 34._o 1._o what_o kind_n of_o unity_n the_o papist_n have_v 34._o 1._o 2._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n use_v the_o scripture_n most_o despiteful_o five_o way_n 35._o 3._o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a faith_n 35._o 9_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n want_v unity_n and_o live_v in_o manifest_a contention_n demonstrate_v 35._o 16._o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v not_o receive_v of_o old_a as_o the_o foundation_n of_o unity_n 36._o 2._o the_o very_a papist_n themselves_n do_v not_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n determination_n 36._o 5._o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v no_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n 36._o 10._o the_o place_n of_o mat._n 16.18_o luk._n 22.32_o joh._n 21.15_o handle_v at_o large_a &_o show_v to_o make_v nothing_o towards_o the_o pope_n authority_n over_o the_o church_n 36._o 11._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o primitive_a church_n acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n four_o experience_n 36._o 26._o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o judicial_o and_o be_v a_o heretic_n 36._o 32._o it_o be_v unpossible_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o hope_n be_v s._n peter_n true_a successor_n 36._o 36._o no_o certainty_n among_o the_o papist_n how_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v prove_v 36._o 39_o a_o place_n of_o cyprian_a allege_v for_o the_o supremacy_n answer_v 37._o 1_o 2._o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v true_o holy_a and_o how_o 38._o 1._o certain_a word_n of_o m._n luther_n expound_v 38._o 2._o outward_a holiness_n no_o proper_a and_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n 38._o 3._o the_o unholines_n &_o wickedness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n demonstrate_v 38._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la what_o saint_n the_o protestant_n have_v in_o their_o church_n 39_o 1._o canonization_n of_o saint_n by_o the_o pope_n a_o ridiculous_a conceit_n 39_o 2._o 3._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n induce_v not_o to_o liberty_n 40._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la fast_v how_o the_o protestant_n and_o how_o the_o papist_n use_v it_o 40._o 2._o auricular_a confession_n or_o shrift_n just_o reject_v 40._o 6._o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n teach_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o protestant_n 40._o 11._o touch_v the_o merit_n of_o work_n 40._o 12._o touch_v man_n power_n in_o keep_v the_o commandment_n 40._o 18._o whether_o all_o the_o good_a work_n we_o do_v be_v sin_n 40._o 22._o the_o distinction_n of_o sin_n into_o mortal_a and_o venial_a 40._o 26._o satisfaction_n how_o teach_v by_o the_o protestant_n and_o how_o by_o the_o papist_n 40._o 28._o a_o short_a view_n of_o long_a pardon_n 40._o 35._o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o expound_v and_o defend_v 40._o 37._o predestination_n how_o hold_v by_o the_o protestant_n 40._o 43._o what_o be_v the_o root_n of_o contingencie_n 40._o 44._o freewill_n and_o god_n
the_o jesuite_n hold_v you_o occupy_v with_o a_o argument_n that_o himself_o know_v be_v nothing_o worth_a d._n harding_n 291._o harding_n confut._n apol_n part_n 6._o pag._n 291._o say_v you_o know_v it_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n à_fw-la moribus_fw-la ad_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la who_o will_v not_o hiss_v and_o trample_v you_o out_o of_o school_n if_o you_o make_v this_o argument_n the_o papist_n life_n be_v faulty_a ergo_fw-la their_o teach_n be_v false_a the_o jesuite_n therefore_o must_v be_v hiss_v at_o by_o hardings_n censure_n staphylus_n 1._o staphylus_n apolo_n part_n 1._o say_v our_o faith_n must_v not_o be_v pin_v to_o the_o life_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o preacher_n etc._n etc._n bellarmine_n posito_fw-la bellarmine_n de_fw-fr great_a &_o lib._n arbit_n l._n 5._o c._n 10._o §._o hoc_fw-la posito_fw-la say_v it_o be_v certain_a the_o doctrine_n which_o man_n teach_v we_o can_v be_v know_v by_o their_o work_n because_o their_o inward_a work_n be_v not_o see_v and_o their_o outward_a work_n be_v common_a to_o both_o side_n 58._o side_n annal._n tom_n 7._o 2_o n._n 526._o n._n 58._o baronius_n call_v they_o a_o ignorant_a company_n that_o measure_n catholic_a faith_n not_o by_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o they_o know_v not_o but_o by_o the_o example_n of_o life_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o papist_n be_v unwilling_a we_o shall_v judge_v of_o their_o faith_n by_o their_o life_n and_o yet_o how_o peremptory_a they_o be_v with_o we_o about_o we_o and_o how_o busy_a in_o smattering_n of_o our_o fault_n that_o will_v admit_v no_o disadvantage_n by_o their_o own_o beside_o they_o have_v a_o position_n among_o they_o 2._o they_o bellar._n de_fw-fr eccles_n mil._n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o that_o no_o inward_a virtue_n be_v require_v to_o make_v one_o a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o only_o the_o external_a profession_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v so_o then_o what_o necessity_n be_v there_o of_o holiness_n either_o inward_a or_o outward_a to_o prove_v that_o a_o people_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o they_o may_v be_v so_o without_o it_o if_o they_o do_v but_o profess_v it_o which_o a_o wicked_a person_n can_v do_v digression_n 31._o contain_v many_o complaint_n make_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o against_o their_o own_o church_n and_o people_n whereby_o it_o appear_v their_o life_n be_v worse_o than_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o protestant_n 4_o but_o because_o they_o be_v narcissi_fw-la be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d callistrat_n divis_fw-la in_o stat_fw-la narcissi_fw-la narcissus_n like_v so_o besot_v with_o their_o own_o beauty_n and_o the_o jesuite_n will_v needs_o have_v it_o try_v whether_o papist_n or_o protestant_n be_v of_o better_a life_n i_o be_o content_a it_o be_v a_o match_n and_o the_o comparison_n be_v make_v upon_o condition_n that_o what_o i_o produce_v be_v always_o remember_v to_o be_v their_o own_o confession_n not_o my_o report_n and_o therefore_o remain_v with_o the_o reader_n for_o a_o cool_a card_n to_o still_o the_o pharisee_n next_o time_n he_o come_v into_o the_o temple_n with_o 18.11_o with_o luc._n 18.11_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o i_o be_o not_o like_o other_o man_n and_o ruffle_v among_o his_o poor_a brethren_n 65.5_o brethren_n esa_n 65.5_o with_o stand_n apart_o come_v not_o nigh_o i_o for_o i_o be_o holy_a than_o thou_o and_o out_o of_o question_n upon_o what_o part_n of_o their_o church_n soever_o we_o look_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v boast_v themselves_o against_o us._n of_o their_o pope_n and_o what_o saint_n they_o have_v be_v i_o shall_v have_v fi●ter_a occasion_n to_o speak_v 54._o speak_v digr_n 54._o below_o touch_v their_o monk_n and_o religious_a person_n i_o refer_v myself_o likewise_o to_o 45._o to_o digr_n 45._o another_o place_n concern_v the_o people_n ferus_fw-la 2._o ferus_fw-la in_o 1._o joh._n c._n 2._o say_v that_o in_o their_o church_n abuse_v of_o all_o sort_n have_v prevail_v with_o diverse_a superstition_n and_o evil_a manner_n even_o to_o the_o high_a degree_n and_o say_v he_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n mammon_n and_o ambition_n have_v so_o blind_v our_o eye_n that_o we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o see_v so_o great_a evil_n in_o our_o church_n not_o deny_v as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v the_o same_o unholinesse_n to_o be_v among_o themselves_o that_o we_o be_v charge_v with_o but_o lament_v that_o such_o as_o he_o be_v have_v no_o eye_n to_o see_v it_o niemensis_n a_o man_n in_o his_o time_n attend_v on_o the_o pope_n 41._o pope_n per_fw-la vim_o stulta_fw-la parens_fw-la quasi_fw-la vipera_fw-la deperis_fw-la omnes_fw-la tu_fw-la portentorum_fw-la locus_fw-la es_fw-la conformis_fw-la eorum_fw-la cum_fw-la nilo_fw-la pottenta_fw-la pari_fw-la nutris_fw-la crocodilos_fw-la jam_fw-la cum_fw-la portentis_fw-la reor_fw-la exterminia_fw-mi sentis_fw-la si_fw-mi quid_fw-la in_o his_o possem_fw-la faceren_fw-mi sterilescere_fw-la matren_n theod._n à_fw-la niem_fw-la de_fw-fr schismat_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 41._o say_v rome_n be_v a_o place_n of_o monster_n yea_o like_a nilus_n breed_v monster_n and_o nourish_a crocodile_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v it_o be_v more_o barren_a in_o yield_v such_o fruit_n of_o viper_n and_o because_o the_o jesuite_n allege_v somewhat_o against_o we_o out_o of_o luther_n sermon_n i_o will_v quit_v he_o again_o with_o another_o sermon_n for_o cornelius_n must_n the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n thus_o preach_v some_o threescore_o year_n since_o in_o saint_n laurence_n church_n in_o rome_n 242._o rome_n concio_fw-la evamg_n de_fw-fr domin_n &_o fest_n tom_n 1._o fer_fw-fr 4_o cinerum_fw-la part_n 3._o pag._n 242._o o_o my_o best_a belove_a rome_n if_o ever_o it_o stand_v any_o city_n in_o hand_n to_o hasten_v her_o conversion_n to_o god_n thou_o have_v need_v to_o give_v example_n to_o all_o other_o city_n of_o this_o conversion_n thou_o which_o art_n whole_o turn_v away_o overthrow_v and_o pervert_v turn_v away_o by_o thy_o own_o negligence_n overthrow_v by_o the_o deceit_n of_o satan_n and_o pervert_v by_o thy_o old_a custom_n of_o sin_v see_v thou_o not_o wretched_a city_n how_o thou_o be_v become_v a_o stew_n of_o lechery_n a_o furnace_n of_o covetousness_n a_o hell_n of_o all_o other_o mortal_a sin_n see_v thou_o not_o how_o every_o state_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n and_o every_o order_n this_o feast_n time_n of_o bacchus_n be_v depart_v from_o god_n and_o make_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o devil_n they_o have_v strive_v among_o themselves_o who_o of_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v the_o worst_a in_o superfluous_a expense_n in_o dishonest_a attire_n in_o filthy_a word_n and_o mischievous_a deed_n alas_o also_o religious_a man_n be_v become_v dissolute_a child_n be_v set_v to_o school_v to_o a_o thousand_o vice_n young_a man_n be_v unbridled_a virgin_n have_v cast_v offshame_n priest_n their_o gown_n and_o monk_n their_o cowl_n wise_a man_n be_v become_v fool_n and_o old_a man_n child_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n he_o also_o preach_v 3._o preach_v orat_fw-la in_o conc._n trid._n in_o 3._o dom._n advent_a conci_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3._o at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n with_o what_o monster_n of_o filthiness_n with_o what_o sink_v of_o uncleanness_n with_o what_o pestiferous_a contagion_n be_v not_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n defile_v i_o make_v yourselves_o judge_n and_o begin_v at_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n and_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o shamefastness_n any_o chastity_n any_o hope_n or_o help_v for_o honest_a life_n if_o there_o be_v not_o unbridled_a lust_n notorious_a boldness_n incredible_a wickedness_n edification_n be_v turn_v into_o destruction_n example_n into_o offence_n custom_n to_o corruption_n regard_n of_o law_n to_o contempt_n thereof_o severity_n to_o slackness_n mercy_n to_o impunity_n piety_n to_o hypocrisy_n preach_v to_o contention_n solemn_a day_n to_o filthy_a mart_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o unhappy_a the_o savour_n of_o life_n to_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n will_v god_n they_o be_v not_o fall_v with_o one_o consent_n from_o religion_n to_o superstition_n from_o faith_n to_o infidelity_n from_o christ_n to_o antichrist_n from_o god_n to_o epicurism_n say_v with_o a_o wicked_a heart_n and_o shameless_a face_n there_o be_v no_o god_n the_o sacred_a name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v make_v a_o jest_n and_o fable_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o pagan_n by_o reason_n of_o we_o who_o wickedness_n with_o a_o shameful_a report_n be_v bruit_v over_o all_o the_o world_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v to_o charge_v our_o adversary_n with_o sin_n if_o we_o will_v walk_v that_o course_n and_o that_o every_o jot_n of_o that_o we_o say_v of_o their_o people_n brutishnes_n be_v confirm_v by_o their_o own_o word_n 5_o and_o touch_v their_o clergy_n there_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v say_v &_o to_o better_a purpose_n because_o be_v the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o holiness_n must_v be_v in_o they_o or_o no_o
be_v as_o ridiculous_a and_o sottish_a in_o answer_v the_o matter_n for_o what_o say_v they_o to_o all_o this_o when_o it_o be_v object_v against_o they_o bellarmin_n rom._n bellarmin_n tom._n 1._o praefat_fw-la in_o gymnas_fw-la rom._n answer_v if_o a_o catholic_a man_n fall_v into_o sin_n if_o he_o commit_v theft_n adultery_n murder_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o building_n abide_v still_o he_o have_v many_o and_o great_a furtherance_n to_o his_o salvation_n he_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o dark_a he_o know_v his_o physician_n he_o may_v through_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o he_o call_v upon_o god_n etc._n etc._n happy_a church_n where_o no_o man_n sin_n may_v prejudicate_v he_o this_o i_o believe_v be_v it_o that_o make_v the_o world_n run_v so_o fast_o to_o it_o for_o sanctuary_n but_o staphylus_n more_o grosl_o after_o his_o manner_n as_o for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o clergy_n fine_a clergy_n apol._n part_n 1._o in_o fine_a say_v he_o god_n be_v their_o judge_n for_o as_o of_o maidenhead_n so_o of_o priesthood_n man_n can_v judge_v and_o the_o canon_n law_n worst_a of_o all_o glow_n all_o 11._o q._n 3._o absi●_n in_o glow_n if_o a_o priest_n embrace_v a_o woman_n it_o shall_v be_v construe_v that_o he_o do_v it_o to_o bless_v she_o and_o a_o priest_n embrace_v a_o woman_n be_v presume_v to_o do_v well_o now_o if_o this_o be_v so_o there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v say_v but_o that_o in_o silence_n and_o astonishment_n we_o adore_v the_o prerogative_n of_o this_o roman_a church_n and_o admire_v her_o liberty_n when_o they_o that_o will_v live_v therein_o may_v without_o any_o danger_n steal_v the_o horse_n but_o profess_v the_o protestant_n religion_n they_o must_v be_v hang_v for_o look_v over_o the_o hedge_n §_o 39_o but_o chief_o their_o church_n be_v not_o holy_a because_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o saint_n or_o holy_a man_n of_o it_o approve_v to_o be_v such_o by_o miracle_n or_o any_o other_o evident_a token_n as_o by_o revelation_n from_o almighty_a god_n the_o answer_n 1_o this_o be_v false_a that_o the_o jesuite_n say_v there_o be_v never_o any_o saint_n or_o holy_a man_n of_o our_o church_n approve_v so_o to_o be_v by_o miracle_n revelation_n or_o any_o other_o evident_a token_n for_o first_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v all_o of_o our_o religion_n in_o every_o point_n and_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n as_o we_o show_v in_o every_o question_n and_o i_o have_v purposely_o declare_v in_o other_o place_n now_o the_o jesuite_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o these_o be_v saint_n and_o by_o miracle_n approve_v so_o to_o be_v next_o we_o have_v true_a believer_n justify_v and_o sanctify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o call_n be_v saint_n or_o holy_a man_n as_o 14.33_o as_o rom._n 1.7_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o &_o 14.33_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o though_o their_o name_n stand_v not_o write_v in_o red_a letter_n in_o the_o calendar_n and_o we_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v such_o first_o by_o the_o miracle_n and_o revelation_n wherewith_o their_o faith_n be_v confirm_v when_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o teach_v it_o for_o the_o man_n and_o the_o miracle_n be_v they_o who_o the_o doctrine_n be_v second_o by_o the_o fruit_n of_o sanctification_n and_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o they_o believe_v the_o former_a yield_v as_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n as_o this_o sinful_a life_n will_v admit_v the_o late_a 6._o late_a tametsi_fw-la dicunt_fw-la remissionem_fw-la non_fw-la pendere_fw-la à_fw-la conditione_n operum_fw-la neque_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la aut_fw-la fidem_fw-la aut_fw-la ullum_fw-la actum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la esse_fw-la causam_fw-la aut_fw-la meritum_fw-la iustificationis_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la negant_fw-la requiti_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o poenitentiam_fw-la &_o fidem_fw-la vivam_fw-la &_o poenitentiam_fw-la setiam_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la his_fw-la neminem_fw-la iustificati_fw-la bell._n the_o iustif_a l._n 3._o c._n 6._o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n bind_v man_n to_o a_o live_a faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n the_o which_o doctrine_n can_v be_v without_o effect_n and_o that_o effect_n can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o make_v such_o holy_a as_o entertain_v it_o three_o we_o have_v 8.16_o have_v col._n 2.2_o 5._o rom_n 8.16_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o understanding_n and_o steadfast_a faith_n in_o christ_n concern_v our_o redemption_n obtain_v partly_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o sanctify_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a token_n of_o our_o holiness_n and_o hereby_o we_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n the_o which_o if_o the_o jesuite_n will_v deny_v then_o let_v he_o prove_v either_o that_o we_o teach_v not_o true_a justification_n and_o sanctification_n or_o if_o we_o teach_v it_o and_o have_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o argument_n of_o true_a holiness_n or_o if_o it_o be_v yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o evident_a enough_o without_o miracle_n to_o demonstrate_v the_o church_n or_o if_o miracle_n be_v so_o necessary_a then_o let_v he_o show_v we_o have_v no_o part_n in_o those_o which_o the_o apostle_n do_v &_o other_o after_o they_o the_o which_o he_o can_v do_v but_o by_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v how_o idle_o and_o circular_o they_o dispute_v against_o the_o protestant_n that_o do_v it_o by_o make_v holiness_n or_o miracle_n the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o but_o the_o jesuites_n mind_n run_v upon_o his_o calendar_n and_o golden_a legend_n wherein_o he_o think_v to_o find_v saint_n and_o miracle_n to_o serve_v his_o turn_n but_o he_o be_v deceive_v for_o let_v they_o be_v examine_v and_o upon_o trial_n it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o one_o part_n be_v no_o papist_n another_o part_n be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o rerum_fw-la natura_fw-la neither_o they_o nor_o their_o miracle_n but_o be_v mere_a device_n &_o fiction_n a_o three_o part_n consist_v of_o uncertainty_n that_o no_o man_n for_o his_o life_n can_v be_v sure_a it_o be_v true_a the_o last_o and_o the_o least_o part_n be_v canonize_v indeed_o and_o be_v papist_n but_o that_o be_v of_o late_a and_o by_o the_o pope_n do_v whereupon_o no_o man_n that_o wise_a be_v will_v ground_v his_o faith_n 3_o and_o touch_v this_o canonisation_n because_o the_o papist_n always_o mean_v it_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o their_o saint_n i_o object_n two_o thing_n sufficient_a to_o discredit_v it_o first_o that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n own_o invention_n dice_v invention_n bell._n de_fw-fr sanct._n beatit_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 8._o §._o dice_v 800._o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o set_v abroach_o &_o continue_v in_o policy_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o certain_a idolatrous_a superstition_n which_o he_o labour_v thereby_o to_o advance_v and_o now_o be_v make_v 7._o make_v bell._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la c._n 7._o the_o seven_o point_n wherein_o the_o canonisation_n consist_v set_v they_o in_o a_o calendar_n with_o red_a letter_n pray_v to_o they_o in_o the_o church_n service_n erect_v church_n and_o altar_n to_o they_o minister_a the_o eucharist_n and_o say_v canonical_a hour_n in_o their_o honour_n dedicate_a holiday_n set_v up_o image_n and_o worship_v their_o relic_n second_o 8._o second_o sum._n rosell_n verbo_fw-la canoniz●tio_fw-la can._n loc_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 5._o q._n 5._o concl_n 3._o platin._n in_o bonif._n 8._o themselves_o can_v deny_v but_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o saint_n canonize_v may_v be_v no_o saint_n and_o the_o miracle_n whereupon_o his_o canonisation_n be_v ground_v may_v be_v false_a as_o 127._o as_o tract_n de_fw-fr concept_n &_o the_o indulgent_a &_o refert_fw-la catharin_n adu_fw-la now_o dogm_n caiet_fw-mi p._n 127._o caietan_n and_o other_o confess_v dispute_v about_o the_o miracle_n pretend_v for_o the_o virgin_n maries_fw-fr conception_n without_o original_a sin_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v necessary_o as_o supra_fw-la as_o si_fw-mi unus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la voco_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la etiam_fw-la caeteri_fw-la vocari_fw-la possunt_fw-la quare_fw-la verace_n essent_fw-la haeretici_fw-la qui_fw-la dogmatizant_n esse_fw-la periculosum_fw-la invocare_fw-la sanctos_fw-la catha_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la some_o papist_n also_o complain_v that_o all_o the_o pope_n saint_n may_v be_v doubt_v of_o and_o no_o man_n can_v invocate_v or_o worship_v they_o without_o manifest_a peril_n of_o idolatry_n so_o that_o we_o see_v it_o be_v a_o weak_a kind_n of_o reason_v to_o prove_v their_o church_n by_o such_o saint_n and_o i_o be_o firm_o persuade_v themselves_o mistrust_v it_o in_o that_o many_o time_n they_o shake_v off_o as_o trifle_n
with_o a_o eternal_a night_n yet_o nothing_o will_v stay_v our_o adversary_n from_o boast_v of_o their_o monk_n for_o all_o this_o but_o their_o holiness_n at_o every_o turn_n must_v be_v cast_v in_o the_o protestant_n tooth_n so_o 83._o so_o trithem_n in_o bened._n apolog._n epist_n pag_n 83._o they_o have_v a_o solemn_a brag_n that_o the_o only_a order_n of_o bennet_n have_v yield_v they_o twenty_o king_n and_o emperor_n above_o a_o hundred_o great_a prince_n eighteen_o pope_n 200._o cardinal_n 1600._o archbishop_n 4000_o bishop_n 15700._o abbot_n 15600._o canonize_a saint_n such_o arrogant_a brag_n as_o this_o have_v give_v we_o occasion_n to_o inquire_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o votary_n more_o than_o else_o we_o will_v have_v do_v and_o our_o good_a hap_n be_v that_o what_o we_o say_v that_o way_n be_v verbatim_o the_o report_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o among_o we_o that_o live_v when_o abbey_n stand_v §_o 43._o the_o second_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o the_o protestant_n teach_v induce_v man_n to_o liberty_n &_o consequent_o to_o lewd_a life_n whereas_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n both_o express_o forbid_v all_o vice_n and_o prescribe_v law_n and_o rule_n contrary_a to_o liberty_n and_o looseness_n of_o life_n and_o last_o contain_v most_o sovereign_a mean_n to_o incite_v a_o man_n to_o all_o perfect_a virtue_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n as_o for_o example_n it_o teach_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o prescience_n or_o predestination_n of_o god_n man_n have_v free_a will_n wherewith_o be_v aid_v by_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v ready_a for_o all_o that_o with_o humble_a devout_a and_o perseverant_fw-la prayer_n will_v ask_v for_o it_o he_o may_v avoid_v sin_n and_o embrace_v virtue_n and_o it_o teach_v that_o god_n commandment_n be_v neither_o impossible_a nor_o hard_a but_o the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v sweet_a and_o his_o burden_n with_o the_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n light_n it_o teach_v that_o as_o a_o man_n may_v by_o grace_n avoid_v sin_n if_o he_o will_v and_o easy_o keep_v god_n commandment_n and_o by_o do_v good_a work_n live_v well_o so_o these_o good_a work_n be_v pleasant_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o such_o for_o which_o god_n will_v give_v to_o all_o that_o do_v perseverant_o do_v they_o exceed_v grace_n &_o everlasting_a reward_n in_o heaven_n and_o contrary_a that_o for_o neglect_v good_a deed_n or_o which_o be_v worse_o do_v sinful_a deed_n god_n have_v prepare_v intolerable_a and_o endless_a pain_n in_o hell_n it_o prescribe_v man_n to_o fast_o and_o to_o pray_v and_o to_o use_v other_o mean_n to_o keep_v the_o flesh_n subject_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n to_o god_n it_o maintain_v confession_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n as_o command_v by_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n which_o both_o be_v a_o great_a bridle_n to_o withdraw_v man_n from_o vice_n as_o experience_n teach_v and_o a_o special_a mean_n whereby_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n know_v the_o inward_a conscience_n of_o their_o flock_n may_v better_o apply_v fit_a remedy_n to_o their_o spiritual_a disease_n and_o prescribe_v to_o every_o one_o fit_a exercise_n for_o their_o practice_n and_o progress_n in_o virtue_n final_o the_o profession_n of_o this_o church_n be_v such_o that_o even_o simple_a protestant_n when_o they_o see_v a_o catholic_a do_v any_o thing_n amiss_o will_v ordinary_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o do_v thus_o so_o that_o these_o that_o sin_n in_o this_o church_n can_v any_o way_n ascribe_v their_o sin_n to_o any_o defect_n or_o perversitie_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o proceed_v from_o their_o own_o frailty_n or_o malice_n contrary_a to_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o sometime_o even_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n &_o actual_a knowledge_n wherefore_o notwithstanding_o that_o there_o be_v some_o sinful_a person_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v call_v holy_a both_o because_o the_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n thereof_o lead_v of_o itself_o to_o holiness_n and_o consequent_o be_v holy_a and_o also_o because_o there_o be_v many_o holy_a person_n or_o saint_n in_o it_o of_o which_o as_o of_o the_o better_a and_o worthy_a and_o principal_a part_n it_o may_v well_o and_o be_v term_v holy_a as_o a_o tree_n which_o have_v some_o branch_n that_o have_v life_n though_o other_o be_v dead_a yet_o of_o those_o as_o of_o the_o better_a and_o more_o respect_a part_n be_v absolute_o say_v to_o be_v alive_a which_o if_o we_o can_v not_o outward_o perceive_v to_o have_v any_o branch_n alive_a we_o will_v absolute_o affirm_v to_o be_v dead_a and_o not_o alive_a the_o answer_n 1_o here_o you_o see_v this_o jesuit_n prefer_v the_o holiness_n of_o his_o church_n before_o we_o because_o it_o flow_v from_o their_o doctrine_n which_o we_o he_o say_v do_v not_o wherein_o i_o blame_v his_o memory_n that_o 24._o that_o §._o 24._o have_v before_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v holiness_n the_o mark_n in_o stead_n thereof_o yet_o now_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o holiness_n but_o by_o the_o doctrine_n for_o say_v he_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n wherein_o he_o forget_v himself_o much_a for_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o holiness_n nor_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o holiness_n of_o a_o false_a church_n as_o he_o conceit_v we_o to_o be_v but_o by_o the_o doctrine_n then_o the_o doctrine_n be_v better_a know_v and_o more_o apparent_a and_o consequent_o a_o better_a mark_n by_o 26._o by_o §._o 26._o his_o own_o rule_n the_o like_a error_n he_o commit_v in_o his_o three_o other_o mark_n unity_n antiquity_n and_o succession_n or_o else_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o will_v shift_v himself_o 2_o next_o he_o forget_v himself_o again_o where_o he_o say_v the_o protestant_n doctrine_n induce_v man_n to_o liberty_n and_o lewdness_n for_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o our_o adversary_n confess_v we_o absolute_o bound_v man_n to_o a_o godly_a life_n stapletons_n 334._o stapletons_n de_fw-fr justify_v pag_n 334._o word_n be_v these_o even_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o albeit_o they_o distinguish_v sanctification_n and_o new_a obedience_n from_o our_o formal_a righteousness_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v no_o essential_a part_n thereof_o yet_o they_o teach_v that_o it_o must_v certain_o and_o infallible_o be_v present_a to_o all_o god_n child_n as_o a_o inseparable_a companion_n of_o justify_v faith_n &_o as_o the_o proper_a note_n of_o god_n child_n let_v the_o jesuite_n look_v upon_o this_o and_o bridle_v the_o liberty_n of_o his_o tongue_n for_o can_v the_o teach_n of_o sanctification_n and_o obedience_n induce_v man_n to_o liberty_n and_o lewdness_n yea_o when_o it_o be_v require_v to_o be_v present_a certain_o and_o infallible_o to_o all_o that_o will_v be_v count_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o reply_v that_o the_o consequence_n of_o our_o doctrine_n lead_v man_n to_o liberty_n i_o demand_v how_o can_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o point_n do_v it_o which_o stapleton_n acknowledge_v we_o teach_v concern_v sanctification_n for_o it_o bind_v they_o in_o all_o their_o life_n to_o avoid_v sin_n upon_o pain_n of_o condemnation_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o neither_o can_v the_o consequence_n of_o any_o other_o point_n we_o teach_v do_v it_o or_o intend_v it_o of_o it_o own_o nature_n because_o the_o force_n and_o reason_n of_o this_o flow_v into_o they_o all_o but_o if_o any_o man_n will_v pervert_v that_o we_o teach_v as_o 5.17_o as_o mat._n 5.17_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o his_o 15._o his_o rom._n 6.1_o &_o 15._o apostle_n teach_v be_v pervert_v in_o the_o like_a case_n and_o receive_v with_o the_o left_a hand_n what_o we_o offer_v with_o the_o right_n 22.11_o right_n apoc._n 22.11_o let_v he_o that_o be_v filthy_a be_v more_o filthy_a and_o let_v such_o libertine_n and_o our_o perverse_a adversary_n go_v together_o for_o god_n truth_n must_v not_o be_v shape_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v shape_v it_o to_o qualify_v such_o humour_n it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o our_o doctrine_n in_o itself_o and_o the_o preach_v thereof_o contain_v obedience_n and_o debar_v the_o contrary_a which_o it_o do_v as_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v in_o all_o the_o point_n that_o this_o jesuite_n except_v against_o in_o the_o forty_o section_n and_o yet_o further_o will_v do_v 3_o for_o it_o be_v untrue_a that_o this_o jesuite_n say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o roman_a church_n be_v against_o all_o vice_n and_o that_o no_o man_n sin_n can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o it_o for_o even_o the_o point_n which_o he_o reckon_v freewill_n ablenesse_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n the_o merit_n of_o man_n work_n fast_v
pray_v and_o shrive_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v they_o be_v so_o many_o heresy_n and_o direct_o lead_v man_n to_o sin_n inspire_v they_o with_o pride_n of_o their_o own_o work_n and_o fill_v they_o with_o hypocrisy_n idolatry_n and_o sensuality_n as_o i_o have_v show_v particular_o in_o they_o all_o in_o the_o digression_n under_o the_o 40._o section_n whereas_o be_v right_o understand_v and_o practise_v they_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n also_o as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o and_o for_o confession_n we_o think_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n exclude_v the_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n to_o reveal_v his_o secret_a sin_n to_o his_o pastor_n that_o so_o he_o may_v receive_v particular_a instruction_n when_o his_o conscience_n be_v trouble_v therewith_o so_o the_o same_o be_v do_v wise_o and_o discreet_o and_o that_o which_o he_o add_v touch_v the_o say_n of_o protestant_n when_o they_o see_v a_o papist_n do_v amiss_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v thus_o be_v a_o weak_a proof_n that_o we_o think_v popery_n direct_v they_o to_o no_o evil_a for_o we_o speak_v to_o they_o either_o as_o to_o hypocrite_n go_v against_o their_o proud_a profession_n or_o as_o to_o ignorant_a person_n transgress_v god_n law_n and_o our_o word_n with_o this_o relation_n be_v so_o far_o from_o show_v that_o we_o think_v they_o do_v against_o their_o religion_n that_o they_o prove_v we_o think_v the_o contrary_n for_o say_v you_o shall_v not_o do_v thus_o we_o show_v they_o their_o hypocrisy_n in_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o profession_n that_o have_v no_o power_n in_o it_o to_o reform_v their_o life_n and_o therefore_o advise_v they_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n that_o may_v direct_v they_o better_o i_o will_v not_o have_v mention_v this_o objection_n it_o be_v so_o contemptible_a but_o that_o i_o perceive_v they_o be_v enamour_a of_o it_o for_o campian_n in_o 24._o in_o concertat_fw-la eccl._n cathol_a in_o angl._n pag_n 24._o a_o epistle_n to_o the_o general_n of_o the_o jesuit_n send_v it_o with_o other_o news_n out_o of_o england_n to_o give_v hope_n of_o good_a success_n to_o the_o catholic_a religion_n 4_o the_o conclusion_n therefore_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n because_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v holy_a and_o lead_v to_o holiness_n and_o the_o holy_a saint_n be_v in_o it_o etc._n etc._n be_v deny_v because_o the_o reason_n whereupon_o it_o be_v ground_v be_v false_a and_o have_v fail_v in_o the_o trial_n yet_o it_o sound_v you_o see_v sweet_a in_o his_o ear_n like_o his_o sacring_a bell_n for_o he_o repeat_v it_o often_o digress_v 46._o name_v certain_a point_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n which_o direct_o tend_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o open_a sin_n and_o liberty_n of_o life_n 5_o but_o yet_o in_o this_o i_o commend_v this_o jesuite_n wit_n that_o declare_v the_o holiness_n of_o his_o doctrine_n he_o mention_v only_o certain_a of_o the_o plausibl_a point_n thereof_o freewill_n keep_v the_o law_n merit_n fast_v pray_v shrive_v and_o conceal_v the_o rest_n for_o they_o which_o commend_v moil_n never_o mention_v the_o ass_n that_o beget_v they_o who_o yet_o be_v the_o one_o half_a of_o their_o pedigree_n but_o talk_v all_o of_o the_o mare_n that_o bear_v they_o so_o play_v our_o adversary_n in_o this_o point_n for_o some_o part_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v so_o foul_a and_o profane_a even_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n without_o any_o discourse_n that_o they_o may_v not_o i_o think_v for_o shame_n offer_v they_o as_o pattern_n of_o their_o holy_a doctrine_n i_o name_v these_o for_o example_n that_o follow_v the_o 72._o the_o azor._fw-la instit_fw-la mor._n tom_n 1._o p._n 663._o aquipontan_n de_fw-fr antich_n pag._n 72._o deprive_v of_o king_n and_o 5._o and_o turrecr_n sum._n the_o eccles_n l._n 2._o c._n 114._o prop._n 5._o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n yea_o 11._o yea_o baron_fw-fr ann_n 1089_o 11._o the_o murder_n of_o they_o whensoever_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o pope_n pleasure_n which_o doctrine_n have_v fill_v all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n with_o treason_n and_o allow_v any_o man_n to_o be_v a_o traitor_n against_o his_o sovereign_n in_o case_n he_o be_v a_o protestant_a prince_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n whereby_o the_o people_n may_v easy_o be_v draw_v to_o idolatry_n as_o 13._o as_o durand_n ratio_fw-la p._n 13._o polyd._n invent_v l_o 6._o c._n 13._o some_o of_o themselves_o deny_v not_o and_o 938._o and_o council_n mogunt_fw-la tom_fw-mi 3._o con_v pag._n 938._o their_o own_o experience_n have_v show_v they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pardon_n 1._o pardon_n tho._n supplem_n q._n 25._o art_n 1._o whereby_o they_o hold_v any_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v without_o satisfaction_n this_o embolden_v certain_a poenit_fw-la certain_a chemnit_fw-la exam_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la german_n to_o rob_v the_o pope_n pardoner_n because_o he_o have_v give_v they_o a_o pardon_n to_o remit_v the_o next_o sin_n they_o shall_v commit_v though_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a but_o in_o the_o abundance_n of_o pardon_n some_o will_v take_v courage_n to_o sin_n if_o it_o be_v but_o to_o taste_v their_o bounty_n 53._o bounty_n staphyl_n p._n 53._o the_o collier_n faith_n to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v induce_v the_o world_n to_o brutish_a ignorance_n their_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n 783._o sacrament_n suar._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 783._o that_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o swine_n eat_v a_o consecrate_a host_n eat_v the_o very_a flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o itself_o be_v blaspemy_n and_o atheism_n c._n atheism_n altisiod_n l._n 1._o p._n 27._o worril_n 1._o d._n 43._o &_o 4._o d._n 21._o &_o 26._o durand_n 4._o p._n 462._o c._n some_o teach_v that_o soul_n damn_v long_o since_o in_o hell_n may_v be_v deliver_v and_o return_v into_o the_o body_n again_o and_o do_v penance_n and_o be_v save_v as_o diverse_a have_v be_v this_o give_v hope_n to_o the_o worst_a liver_n that_o be_v and_o in_o part_n confirm_v the_o error_n of_o origen_n meretrix_n origen_n hard._n confut_o apol_n d._n 161._o graff_n part_n 1._o l._n 2._o c._n 75._o nu_fw-la 3._o tho._n bergom_n rab_n v._o meretrix_n they_o say_v the_o stew_n be_v for_o a_o commonwealth_n this_o maintain_v open_a whoredom_n yea_o the_o pope_n allow_v the_o courtesan_n in_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n upon_o a_o rent_n to_o profess_v bawdry_n they_o forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n that_o direct_o lead_v many_o of_o they_o to_o hell_n for_o panormitan_n coniugat_fw-la panormitan_n part_n 3._o cum_fw-la olim_fw-la de_fw-fr clericis_fw-la coniugat_fw-la say_v it_o be_v for_o the_o good_a and_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n who_o can_v contain_v if_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o marry_v for_o experience_n show_v that_o the_o law_n of_o continency_n have_v produce_v contrary_a effect_n in_o that_o man_n live_v not_o therein_o chaste_o but_o grievous_o sin_n by_o whoredom_n whereas_o it_o be_v chastity_n if_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o their_o own_o wife_n 347._o wife_n fr._n ouand_n 4._o d._n 13_o p._n 347._o they_o hold_v that_o all_o heretic_n stand_v deprive_v of_o the_o right_n of_o dominion_n both_o natural_a oeconomical_a and_o civil_a this_o teach_v all_o inhumanity_n and_o overthrow_v all_o society_n for_o first_o ib._n first_o ouand_fw-fr ib._n no_o father_n have_v any_o long_a command_n over_o his_o child_n nor_o master_n over_o his_o servant_n if_o once_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n repute_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n second_o prince_n lose_v their_o kingdom_n as_o i_o say_v before_o three_o all_o catholic_n as_o papist_n call_v themselves_o be_v discharge_v of_o all_o bond_n towards_o they_o crab._n they_o council_n constant_n pag._n 528._o edit_n crab._n so_o that_o no_o promise_n or_o oath_n bind_v they_o any_o long_o neither_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o pay_v they_o any_o debt_n 15._o debt_n ouand_fw-fr ibid._n sum._n angel_n p._n 101._o n._n 15._o for_o he_o that_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n or_o otherwise_o to_o make_v payment_n at_o a_o certain_a day_n if_o he_o fail_v yet_o he_o sin_v not_o because_o the_o other_o man_n heresy_n have_v discharge_v he_o debtor_n may_v excuse_v themselves_o by_o except_v against_o their_o creditor_n that_o they_o be_v heretic_n this_o be_v cozenage_n four_o 700._o four_o tolet._n sum._n pag._n 700._o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o equivocate_v by_o reserve_v another_o meaning_n to_o himself_o of_o his_o word_n than_o he_o that_o hear_v he_o shall_v conceive_v 12._o conceive_v rhem._n art_n 23._o 12._o yea_o to_o speak_v contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n if_o it_o be_v to_o detect_v a_o papist_n this_o be_v lie_v and_o perjury_n 6_o again_o their_o doctrine_n not_o only_o infer_v but_o express_o allow_v most_o palpable_a wickedness_n direct_o tend_v to_o the_o desolation_n of_o public_a government_n and_o private_a honesty_n 349._o
the_o apostle_n time_n increase_v by_o the_o heresy_n and_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n of_o some_o that_o daily_o corrupt_v 7._o corrupt_v euseb_n hist_o l._n 3._o c._n 32._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o niceph._n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o the_o truth_n for_o the_o story_n remember_v we_o of_o a_o say_n of_o hegesippus_n that_o the_o church_n continue_v a_o virgin_n undefiled_a as_o long_o as_o the_o apostle_n live_v but_o when_o that_o generation_n be_v pass_v the_o conspiracy_n of_o wicked_a heresy_n through_o the_o seducement_n of_o those_o which_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n take_v beginning_n but_o hereof_o 3.18_o hereof_o act._n 20.28_o phil._n 3.18_o the_o apostle_n give_v warning_n even_o with_o tear_n and_o 70._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d basil_n ep_v 70._o the_o ancient_a father_n complain_v that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o papacy_n to_o have_v be_v resist_v when_o it_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o cockatrice_n egg_n 21_o after_o 600._o year_n be_v expire_v that_o the_o several_a point_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n begin_v one_o after_o another_o to_o be_v more_o gross_o corrupt_v and_o change_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o fifty_o i_o name_v imago_fw-la name_v alphons_n v._o imago_fw-la serenus_n the_o bishop_n of_o marsil_n in_o france_n who_o break_v the_o image_n that_o begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o his_o diocese_n and_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 32.34.38.39_o rome_n l._n 4._o ep_n 32.34.38.39_o resist_v the_o supremacy_n and_o 3._o and_o plat._n bonif._n 3._o the_o whole_a greek_a church_n complain_v when_o phocas_n have_v first_o confer_v it_o on_o boniface_n 22_o after_o 650._o to_o 700_o i_o name_v the_o sixth_o general_a council_n 13._o council_n sext._n syn._n can._n 13._o decree_a the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n labour_v to_o restrain_v it_o 82._o it_o carranz_n in_o can._n 82._o and_o forbid_v to_o make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o dove_n 1._o dove_n council_n bracar_n 3._o c._n 1._o the_o council_n hold_v in_o portugal_n where_o the_o cup_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v minister_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o sacrament_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o some_o that_o use_v to_o dip_v the_o bread_n and_o so_o give_v it_o which_o be_v one_o beginning_n of_o the_o half_a communion_n 23_o after_o 700._o to_o 750_o i_o name_v 84._o name_v synod_n c._n 138._o zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 84._o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o leo_n isaurus_n against_o image_n 633._o image_n illyric_n catal_a test_n tom_fw-mi 1._o pag._n 633._o and_o clemens_n scotus_n and_o adelbartus_n who_o preach_v against_o the_o supremacy_n tradition_n image_n &_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n also_o against_o purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v therefore_o persecute_v by_o zachary_n the_o pope_n which_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o some_o history_n they_o be_v so_o hardly_o censure_v 24_o after_o 750._o to_o 800_o i_o name_v 141._o name_v zon._n tom_n 3._o pag._n 88_o synod_n c._n 141._o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o constantinus_n copronymus_n and_o 2._o and_o rhegino_n chro_fw-la l._n 2._o of_o frankford_n under_o charles_n the_o great_a against_o image_n and_o the_o book_n yet_o extant_a that_o he_o cause_v to_o be_v make_v against_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n with_o another_o set_v forth_o by_o ludovicus_n his_o son_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n both_o which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n 25_o after_o 800._o to_o 850_o i_o name_v joannes_n scotus_n a_o great_a learned_a man_n 1._o man_n danae_n resp_n de_fw-fr euchar._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o who_o resist_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o in_o that_o time_n some_o private_a man_n begin_v to_o set_v on_o foot_n be_v therefore_o murder_v the_o same_o time_n bertram_n also_o write_v against_o it_o who_o book_n be_v extant_a tr●heinius_n script_n tr●heinius_n catal._n script_n say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n very_o skilful_a in_o the_o scripture_n exceed_o learned_a and_o of_o a_o holy_a life_n imag_n life_n jonas_n aurel._n the_o cult_a imag_n claudius_n the_o bishop_n of_o tower_n in_o france_n resist_v image_n worship_n of_o saint_n and_o pilgrimage_n 2._o pilgrimage_n anast_n vit_fw-mi pont._n in_o serg._n 2._o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n reduce_v the_o pope_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o send_v three_o archbishop_n twenty_o bishop_n and_o diverse_a noble_a man_n to_o rome_n who_o dispute_v against_o he_o and_o confute_v he_o 26_o after_o 850._o to_o 900_o i_o name_v volutianus_n a_o bishop_n that_o write_v to_o nicolas_n the_o first_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o priest_n marriage_n michael_n marriage_n ep._n nicol_n ad_fw-la michael_n michael_n the_o emperor_n and_o phorius_fw-la the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n resist_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 1_o supremacy_n anast_n in_o nicol_n 1_o as_o also_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o ravenna_n 27_o after_o 900._o to_o 950_o and_o so_o forward_o such_o abuse_n be_v note_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o 68_o that_o fascic_fw-la temp_n pag._n 68_o a_o ancient_a history_n mention_v the_o same_o complain_v alas_o alas_o lord_n god_n how_o be_v gold_n obscure_v and_o the_o colour_n change_v what_o offence_n do_v we_o read_v to_o have_v happen_v about_o these_o time_n even_o in_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a seat_n which_o hitherto_o with_o such_o zeal_n thou_o preserue_v what_o contention_n emulation_n sect_n envy_n ambition_n intrusion_n persecution_n o_o the_o worst_a time_n that_o ever_o be_v wherein_o the_o holy_a fail_v and_o truth_n be_v diminish_v from_o the_o son_n of_o man_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n 8._o effect_n an._n 912._o nu_fw-la 8._o write_v baronius_n what_o be_v then_o the_o face_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n how_o filthy_a be_v it_o when_o potent_a and_o withal_o base_a whore_n bear_v all_o the_o sway_n at_o rome_n at_o who_o lust_n sea_n be_v change_v bishop_n be_v bestow_v and_o that_o which_o be_v horrible_a to_o hear_v and_o not_o to_o be_v utter_v their_o lover_n be_v thrust_v into_o saint_n peter_n chair_n in_o such_o time_n as_o these_o be_v the_o reader_n may_v easy_o think_v there_o be_v matter_n enough_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o deserve_a resistance_n as_o 1039._o as_o osbern_n vit_fw-mi s._n odonis_n quem_fw-la refert_fw-la fox_n in_o martyrol_n pag._n 1039._o certain_a of_o the_o english_a clergy_n maintain_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v only_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n then_o increase_v 28_o after_o 950._o to_o 1000_o we_o have_v 963._o have_v sigon_n reg._n ital._n l._n 7._o a_o 963._o otho_n the_o great_a that_o depose_v john_n the_o pope_n and_o assume_v into_o his_o hand_n the_o nominate_n and_o make_v of_o pope_n hereafter_o which_o be_v a_o manifest_a resistance_n make_v against_o the_o growth_n of_o the_o primacy_n aelfr_n primacy_n homil._n saxon_n aelfr_n aelfricus_fw-la the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n that_o preach_v and_o publish_v his_o homily_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n come_v in_o and_o i_o name_v 22._o name_v refert_fw-la baron_n a_o 992._o nu_fw-la 22._o arnulphus_n who_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rheims_n note_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n o_o rome_n say_v he_o to_o be_v lament_v which_o to_o our_o ancestor_n yeeld_v shine_a light_n of_o father_n in_o our_o time_n send_v monstrous_a darkness_n which_o in_o the_o age_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v infamous_a what_o o_o you_o reverend_a father_n what_o i_o say_v think_v you_o he_o to_o be_v which_o sit_v thus_o in_o a_o lofty_a throne_n in_o purple_a robe_n and_o glitter_a gold_n certain_o if_o he_o be_v void_a of_o charity_n lift_v and_o puff_v up_o only_o with_o knowledge_n he_o be_v antichrist_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n but_o if_o he_o want_v both_o charity_n and_o knowledge_n then_o be_v he_o a_o idol_n and_o to_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o answer_n be_v to_o inquire_v of_o the_o marble_n stone_n 29_o after_o 1000_o to_o 1050_o i_o name_v rodulfus_n ardeus_n preach_v against_o 1._o against_o homil._n dominic_n in_o sept._n &_o 18._o dominic_n post_fw-la trin._n ho._n 1._o merit_n and_o 2._o and_o 18._o dom_fw-la trin._n hom_n 2._o ability_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n baron_n law_n his_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o quem_fw-la refert_fw-la baron_n glaber_n rodulphus_fw-la that_o write_v how_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v in_o another_o man_n diocese_n the_o which_o he_o also_o say_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o prelate_n in_o france_n 5._o france_n baron_fw-fr a_o 100_o 4._o nu_fw-la 5._o leuthericus_fw-la a_o archbishop_n in_o france_n deny_v the_o real_a presence_n 30_o after_o 1050._o to_o 1100_o i_o name_v gl._n name_v d._n
bungle_a workman_n that_o be_v not_o their_o craft_n master_n till_o the_o smith_n the_o carpenter_n and_o the_o painter_n come_v every_o one_o in_o his_o place_n and_o show_v his_o skill_n first_o the_o canonist_n like_o blacksmith_n blue_a with_o the_o bellows_n of_o their_o decree_n and_o hammer_v and_o heat_n it_o in_o the_o coal_n of_o the_o pope_n constitution_n these_o smith_n be_v gratian_n pope_n john_n gregory_n and_o boniface_n with_o their_o prentice_n that_o serve_v they_o hostiensis_n innocent_n panormitane_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o profession_n next_o the_o carpenter_n that_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n be_v the_o friar_n and_o schoolman_n which_o stretch_v their_o line_n over_o it_o and_o bring_v it_o into_o better_a shape_n thomas_n and_o scot_n and_o alexander_n fashion_v it_o with_o line_n and_o level_a they_o stretch_v out_o the_o line_n of_o method_n over_o it_o and_o with_o the_o thread_n of_o a_o distinction_n they_o plain_v it_o where_o it_o be_v rough_a and_o with_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o logic_n and_o philosophy_n make_v it_o in_o the_o fashion_n of_o a_o man_n after_o that_o the_o great_a lateran_n council_n about_o the_o year_n 1215._o have_v polish_v it_o and_o give_v it_o strong_a joint_n to_o stand_v upon_o not_o long_o after_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o another_o lateran_n hew_v it_o over_o again_o and_o alter_v the_o fashion_n in_o certain_a point_n touch_v the_o pope_n authority_n there_o some_o cardinal_n senensis_n and_o cusanus_fw-la think_v the_o head_n stand_v too_o high_a above_o the_o shoulder_n and_o will_v have_v have_v it_o bow_v down_o a_o little_a low_o at_o last_o they_o bring_v it_o to_o trent_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o best_a workman_n as_o a._n as_o absolutissima_fw-la trident._n synod_n possevin_n biblioth_v select_v pag._n 18._o a._n they_o say_v who_o mend_v it_o from_o top_n to_o toe_n and_o set_v it_o up_o again_o when_o the_o worm_n have_v wellnigh_o consume_v it_o since_o which_o time_n the_o three_o sort_n of_o workman_n the_o painter_n have_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o fellow_n who_o never_o cease_v to_o paint_v it_o day_n and_o night_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n but_o they_o have_v try_v it_o to_o make_v it_o beautiful_a some_o with_o varnish_n and_o plaster_n stop_v up_o the_o crack_n which_o the_o sun_n shine_v upon_o it_o have_v make_v that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v see_v bellarmine_n and_o his_o associate_n in_o that_o kind_n stir_v all_o colour_n together_o and_o varnish_v over_o the_o smoky_a and_o dusty_a place_n so_o skilful_o that_o a_o man_n can_v scarce_o tell_v what_o the_o colour_n be_v surius_n and_o baronius_n with_o other_o colour_n ground_n by_o legendary_n cast_v a_o shadow_n over_o it_o for_o seem_v too_o youthful_a but_o they_o have_v paint_v a_o gray_a beard_n to_o a_o green_a head_n the_o rest_n stand_v by_o such_o as_o be_v sixtus_n senensis_n lindan_n staphylus_n possevine_a like_a censor_n commend_v the_o workmanship_n and_o flatter_v the_o workman_n and_o extol_v the_o idol_n against_o they_o they_o call_v lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n thus_o at_o the_o last_o have_v they_o polish_v their_o dagon_n and_o set_v it_o up_o before_o the_o lord_n ark_n save_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v forget_v that_o with_o some_o of_o it_o they_o warm_v themselves_o and_o roast_v their_o meat_n as_o pardon_n the_o mass_n and_o purgatory_n and_o laugh_v in_o their_o sleeve_n at_o such_o as_o turn_v the_o spit_n ah_o i_o be_o warm_a i_o have_v be_v at_o the_o fire_n 6_o this_o be_v the_o labour_n and_o workmanship_n that_o our_o adversary_n have_v bestow_v on_o their_o religion_n to_o set_v it_o forth_o whereby_o they_o have_v make_v their_o church_n so_o seem_v catholic_a and_o indeed_o we_o have_v always_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v two_o principal_a thing_n which_o draw_v man_n conceit_n to_o papistry_n the_o first_o be_v the_o name_n and_o report_n that_o go_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n while_o man_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o a_o church_n so_o ancient_a and_o renown_v in_o all_o age_n can_v but_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o rumour_n and_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n learning_n as_o if_o it_o be_v unpossible_a so_o learned_a man_n shall_v be_v deceive_v and_o their_o writing_n can_v be_v answer_v nevertheless_o it_o be_v easy_a enough_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n through_o all_o this_o if_o man_n will_v consider_v of_o thing_n attentive_o for_o touch_v the_o name_n and_o show_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v but_o a_o empty_a sound_n of_o word_n and_o title_n this_o present_a roman_a be_v whole_o depart_v in_o the_o question_n controvert_v from_o the_o ancient_a and_o retain_v nothing_o but_o the_o title_n this_o shall_v deceive_v no_o man_n for_o the_o true_a ancient_a and_o apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o the_o father_n and_o seek_v to_o by_o the_o world_n profess_v another_o kind_n of_o faith_n then_o this_o do_v and_o the_o same_o that_o now_o we_o defend_v against_o they_o whereas_o this_o be_v fall_v from_o it_o and_o yet_o skilful_o retain_v still_o the_o same_o seat_n and_o title_n impose_v marvellous_o upon_o the_o world_n hereby_o isidorus_n pelusiota_n 408._o pelusiota_n l._n 3._o epist_n 408._o have_v a_o say_n that_o show_v the_o likelihood_n of_o this_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o afterward_o when_o the_o church_n flourish_v and_o labour_v as_o yet_o of_o no_o disease_n the_o divine_a grace_n of_o god_n go_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o ring_n round_o about_o it_o the_o holy_a ghost_n administer_a all_o thing_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o incite_v and_o turn_v it_o towards_o heaven_n afterward_o it_o grow_v disease_v and_o be_v trouble_v with_o faction_n and_o then_o all_o those_o thing_n fly_v away_o thus_o the_o church_n be_v like_o a_o woman_n fall_v from_o her_o ancient_a happiness_n and_o retain_v only_o some_o sign_n thereof_o she_o have_v the_o sheath_n and_o casket_n where_o her_o ornament_n lay_v but_o the_o good_n themselves_n she_o be_v spoil_v of_o not_o through_o his_o carelessness_n and_o negligence_n that_o first_o enrich_v she_o but_o through_o their_o naughtiness_n that_o govern_v not_o thing_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v this_o doctor_n well_o perceive_v that_o a_o church_n may_v lose_v the_o faith_n and_o yet_o retain_v her_o name_n still_o and_o he_o see_v that_o in_o his_o time_n thing_n fall_v to_o decay_v and_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v alter_v to_o what_o purpose_n then_o shall_v any_o man_n respect_v the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v change_v or_o what_o do_v the_o prerogative_n and_o royalty_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n concern_v this_o that_o be_v turn_v to_o another_o religion_n or_o who_o regard_v a_o house_n of_o stately_a building_n and_o honourable_a title_n or_o antic_a memory_n since_o john_n of_o gaunt_n when_o the_o plague_n have_v infect_v it_o and_o thief_n possess_v it_o beside_o when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o best_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o after_o yet_o other_o church_n be_v commend_v as_o well_o and_o count_v as_o good_a as_o it_o 449._o it_o meditat._n &_o respon_n in_o iute_v graecoroman_n tom_fw-mi 1._o p._n 449._o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o balsamon_n the_o five_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n alexandria_n constantinople_n jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n have_v identity_n of_o honour_n 〈◊〉_d honour_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o obtain_v the_o room_n of_o one_o head_n over_o the_o body_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n and_o nicephorus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 307._o constantinople_n council_n ephesin_n pag._n 307._o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o leo_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n say_v and_o we_o also_o who_o have_v obtain_v the_o name_n of_o new_a rome_n be_v build_v upon_o one_o and_o the_o same_o foundation_n of_o faith_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n where_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o god_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n 〈◊〉_d stone_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v nothing_o behind_o the_o elder_n roman_n for_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v reckon_v before_o the_o rest_n wherefore_o let_v saint_n paul_n glory_n and_o rejoice_v in_o we_o also_o and_o join_v new_a thing_n with_o old_a and_o compare_v we_o in_o doctrine_n and_o preach_v let_v he_o glory_n in_o we_o both_o alike_o for_o we_o as_o well_o as_o they_o follow_v his_o doctrine_n and_o institution_n wherein_o we_o be_v root_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n wherein_o we_o stand_v and_o rejoice_v etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o the_o east_n think_v themselves_o equal_a with_o rome_n and_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o
apostle_n to_o belong_v to_o they_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v how_o undiscreet_a a_o part_n it_o be_v to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n afore_o we_o have_v inquire_v whether_o it_o keep_v the_o ancient_a faith_n or_o so_o to_o be_v conceit_v of_o one_o church_n that_o we_o will_v look_v towards_o no_o other_o but_o it_o 7_o the_o second_o point_n that_o deceive_v many_o be_v the_o rumour_n and_o opinion_n that_o go_v of_o our_o adversary_n learning_n which_o be_v as_o weak_a a_o motive_n to_o build_v on_o as_o the_o former_a when_o the_o great_a heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v want_v no_o learning_n and_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a this_o of_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o commend_v with_o the_o least_o themselves_o be_v unmeasurable_a and_o more_o than_o odious_a in_o extol_v their_o own_o faculty_n and_o their_o people_n as_o ridiculous_a and_o irksome_a in_o report_v it_o it_o be_v nothing_o beseem_v christian_n to_o leave_v the_o cause_n and_o to_o fall_v a_o boast_n let_v our_o book_n be_v view_v and_o the_o disputation_n between_o we_o weigh_v and_o it_o will_v appear_v they_o have_v no_o such_o vantage_n no_o not_o in_o art_n and_o learning_n and_o but_o that_o unsettle_a brain_n be_v give_v vain_o to_o admire_v novelty_n our_o church_n at_o home_o here_o in_o england_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o those_o abroad_o who_o have_v make_v our_o proud_a enemy_n feel_v the_o edge_n of_o their_o learning_n have_v bring_v forth_o and_o at_o this_o day_n yield_v as_o learned_a as_o our_o adversary_n ever_o have_v any_o and_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v some_o trial_n of_o this_o i_o will_v give_v a_o example_n or_o two_o wherein_o he_o shall_v see_v and_o by_o that_o judge_n of_o the_o rest_n how_o learned_o they_o carry_v themselves_o now_o and_o then_o against_o we_o and_o how_o great_a their_o skill_n be_v to_o help_v they_o when_o they_o be_v a_o little_a urge_v 8_o they_o have_v a_o solemn_a tradition_n among_o they_o concern_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n the_o story_n whereof_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o 1.14_o the_o act._n 1.14_o rhemish_a testament_n to_o this_o effect_n now_o at_o the_o time_n of_o her_o death_n all_o the_o apostle_n then_o disperse_v into_o diverse_a nation_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v miraculous_o bring_v together_o save_v s._n thomas_n who_o come_v the_o three_o day_n after_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o honour_v her_o divine_a departure_n and_o funeral_n where_o before_o her_o death_n and_o after_o for_o three_o day_n not_o only_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n present_a but_o the_o angel_n also_o and_o power_n of_o heaven_n do_v sing_v most_o melodious_o they_o bury_v her_o body_n in_o gethseman●_n but_o for_o s._n thomas_n sake_n who_o desire_v to_o see_v and_o reverence_v it_o they_o open_v the_o sepulchre_n the_o three_o day_n and_o find_v it_o void_a of_o the_o holy_a body_n but_o exceed_o fragrant_a they_o return_v assure_o deem_v that_o her_o body_n be_v assumpt_v into_o heaven_n as_o the_o church_n hold_v and_o therefore_o celebrate_v most_o solemn_o the_o day_n of_o her_o assumption_n and_o 200._o and_o anton._n chron_n part_n 1._o p._n 147._o suar._n tom_n 2._o p._n 200._o some_o add_v that_o company_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n and_o christ_n himself_o for_o how_o else_o shall_v he_o have_v fulfil_v the_o commandment_n honour_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n meet_v she_o and_o with_o great_a glory_n and_o joy_n place_v she_o in_o her_o throne_n this_o be_v the_o legend_n and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v mistrust_v they_o can_v not_o defend_v it_o 32._o it_o fe●ard_n in_o hest_n pag._n 616._o rhem._n act_n 1.14_o bristo_n mot_fw-fr 32._o most_o bitter_o they_o rail_v upon_o all_o that_o deny_v it_o persuade_v man_n 24._o man_n baron_fw-fr a_o 48._o nu_fw-la 17._o &_o 24._o that_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n concept_n church_n catarrh_n opusc_fw-la dè_fw-la concept_n yea_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o ground_n whereupon_o they_o stand_v be_v the_o testimony_n of_o many_o author_n a_o certain_a writing_n of_o john_n the_o evangelist_n dionysius_n areopagita_n melito_n athanasius_n jerome_n austin_n damascene_fw-la bernard_n andreas_n cretensis_n nicephorus_n metaphrastes_n glycas_n etc._n etc._n who_o will_v not_o think_v but_o here_o be_v a_o learned_a defence_n of_o that_o they_o say_v but_o mark_v the_o issue_n first_o we_o have_v show_v they_o and_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n that_o whatsoever_o the_o late_a writer_n damascene_fw-la bernard_n andreas_n metaphrastes_n nicephorus_n glycas_n and_o other_o of_o those_o time_n have_v write_v touch_v this_o matter_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o former_a author_n dionysius_n melito_n the_o writing_n of_o s._n john_n athanasius_n jerome_n and_o austin_n and_o can_v have_v no_o more_o credit_n than_o the_o say_a author_n have_v from_o who_o it_o be_v borrow_v now_o these_o author_n we_o prove_v to_o be_v all_o forge_a and_o our_o adversary_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o matter_n confess_v it_o 104._o it_o d._n 15._o sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la sixt._n senens_fw-la p._n 104._o the_o book_n go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n john_n be_v bore_v through_o the_o ear_n by_o the_o pope_n himself_o in_o a_o council_n and_o so_o be_v melito_n as_o 12._o as_o an._n 48._o n._n 12._o baronius_n acknowledge_v who_o call_v he_o a_o idle_a companion_n full_a of_o dotage_n and_o foolery_n unworthy_a of_o christian_a audience_n the_o same_o censure_n he_o give_v inde_fw-la give_v nu._n 13._o &_o inde_fw-la of_o sophronius_n and_o jerome_n to_o paul_n &_o eustoch_n and_o inde_fw-la and_o nu._n 20._o &_o inde_fw-la of_o athanasius_n confess_v they_o to_o be_v forge_v in_o their_o name_n and_o full_a of_o lie_n and_o imposture_n and_o 17._o and_o nu._n 17._o of_o that_o which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o austin_n as_o the_o divine_n of_o lovan_n have_v do_v before_o he_o dionysius_n be_v he_o that_o when_o all_o be_v do_v must_v bear_v the_o burden_n but_o he_o also_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o 17._o by_o erasm_n declare_v ad_fw-la censur_fw-la parisiens_n theol_fw-it p._n 180._o caietan_n &_o valla_n annot_v in_o act._n 17._o right_a skilful_a papist_n to_o be_v a_o counterfeit_n and_o if_o the_o rhemist_n 1.14_o rhemist_n in_o act._n 1.14_o say_v true_a that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n live_v but_o 63._o year_n then_o by_o 48._o by_o she_o bear_v christ_n at_o 15._o year_n christ_n die_v at_o 33_o then_o she_o be_v 48._o whereto_o if_o you_o add_v 15._o more_o it_o make_v they_o 63_o and_o that_o year_n fall_v into_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 48._o computation_n of_o time_n she_o die_v in_o the_o eight_o and_o forty_o year_n after_o christ_n birth_n what_o time_n dionysius_n can_v not_o as_o the_o book_n go_v under_o his_o name_n pretend_v be_v present_a for_o the_o same_o rhemist_n 375._o rhemist_n table_n of_o sain●_n paul_n p._n 375._o say_v he_o be_v not_o convert_v till_o a_o 51_o and_o baronius_n 1._o baronius_n an._n 52._o nu_fw-la 1._o not_o till_o a_o 52_o which_o be_v three_o or_o four_o year_n after_o her_o death_n beside_o baronius_n 19_o baronius_n nu._n 19_o be_v drive_v to_o confess_v her_o sepulchre_n be_v not_o find_v or_o know_v in_o jeromes_n time_n but_o when_o at_o the_o length_n not_o much_o before_o the_o day_n of_o iwenalis_n the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v find_v and_o that_o without_o the_o body_n by_o occasion_n hereof_o the_o argument_n of_o writing_n concern_v the_o assume_v of_o her_o body_n into_o heaven_n be_v exhibit_v for_o before_o that_o time_n none_o have_v write_v so_o let_v this_o be_v note_v if_o her_o sepulchre_n be_v not_o know_v nor_o her_o body_n miss_v out_o of_o it_o nor_o no_o man_n write_v of_o her_o assumption_n till_o iwenalis_n time_n how_o can_v dionysius_n that_o live_v so_o long_o afore_o mention_v it_o again_o let_v the_o book_n be_v dionysius_n his_o own_o and_o legitimate_a yet_o the_o word_n thereof_o convince_v not_o this_o assumption_n he_o say_v no_o more_o but_o thus_o graec_fw-la thus_o de_n divin_v nomin_v p._n 281._o graec_fw-la when_o we_o also_o as_o you_o know_v and_o yourself_o and_o many_o of_o our_o holy_a brethren_n come_v together_o to_o behold_v the_o body_n which_o the_o prince_n of_o life_n be_v in_o and_o which_o receive_v god_n where_o james_n the_o brother_n of_o our_o lord_n also_o be_v present_a and_z peter_n the_o high_a and_o ancient_a top_n of_o the_o divine_n then_o after_o we_o have_v behold_v it_o please_v all_o the_o bishop_n as_o every_o one_o be_v able_a to_o praise_v the_o almighty_a goodness_n of_o his_o infirmity_n that_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o life_n unto_o we_o where_o jerotheus_n as_o you_o know_v excel_v all_o the_o other_o holy_a
creed_n with_o his_o length_n and_o his_o breed_n from_o my_o toe_n to_o my_o crown_n and_o all_o my_o body_n up_o and_o down_o from_o my_o back_n to_o my_o breast_n my_o five_o wit_n be_v my_o rest_n god_n let_v never_o ill_o come_v at_o ill_a but_o through_o jesus_n own_o will_n sweet_a jesus_n lord_n amen_n many_o also_o use_v to_o wear_v veruein_o against_o blast_n and_o when_o they_o gather_v it_o for_o this_o purpose_n first_o they_o cross_v the_o herb_n with_o their_o hand_n and_o then_o they_o bless_v it_o thus_o hallow_v be_v thou_o veruein_o as_o thou_o grow_v on_o the_o ground_n for_o in_o the_o mount_n of_o caluary_n there_o thou_o be_v first_o find_v thou_o heal_v our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o stanchedst_a his_o bleed_v wound_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o take_v thou_o from_o the_o around_o and_o so_o they_o pluck_v it_o up_o and_o wear_v it_o their_o prayer_n and_o tradition_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v infinite_a and_o the_o ceremony_n they_o use_v in_o all_o their_o action_n be_v nothing_o inferior_a to_o the_o gentile_n in_o number_n and_o strangeness_n which_o any_o man_n may_v easy_o observe_v that_o converse_v with_o they_o the_o which_o i_o have_v note_v in_o this_o place_n not_o to_o disgrace_v the_o person_n of_o any_o but_o to_o show_v the_o pitiful_a barbarousness_n wherein_o they_o live_v that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o who_o our_o seminary_n have_v train_v up_o boast_v that_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n or_o knowledge_n or_o devotion_n among_o we_o but_o in_o these_o people_n and_o let_v any_o man_n judge_v how_o it_o can_v possible_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o nourish_v this_o barbarous_a and_o more_o than_o brutish_a ignorance_n &_o superstition_n among_o the_o people_n and_o it_o can_v be_v answer_v that_o these_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o a_o few_o simple_a people_n for_o this_o that_o i_o say_v be_v general_a throughout_o the_o country_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o common_a people_n practise_v nothing_o else_o until_o it_o please_v god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o convert_v they_o yea_o the_o most_o man_n and_o woman_n addict_v to_o papistry_n though_o well_o bear_v and_o bring_v up_o for_o civil_a quality_n and_o of_o good_a place_n in_o the_o country_n yet_o lie_v plunge_v in_o this_o ignorance_n be_v persuade_v that_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v by_o long_a custom_n and_o continuance_n in_o their_o old_a religion_n so_o they_o style_v it_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v over_o yea_o this_o sore_n be_v so_o foul_a and_o grievous_a that_o it_o may_v not_o endure_v to_o be_v look_v into_o 14_o this_o brutish_a condition_n of_o their_o people_n may_v the_o better_o be_v credit_v and_o be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o because_o the_o open_a practice_n of_o their_o church_n give_v they_o example_n and_o encourage_v they_o by_o their_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n towards_o the_o saint_n depart_v for_o how_o can_v that_o people_n discern_v their_o ignorance_n who_o pastor_n even_o before_o their_o eye_n in_o their_o open_a service_n and_o print_a book_n serve_v the_o saint_n and_o worship_n they_o with_o the_o same_o service_n that_o they_o give_v to_o christ_n this_o i_o offer_v for_o the_o seven_o motive_n to_o induce_v any_o papist_n to_o suspect_v his_o own_o religion_n for_o it_o can_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o take_v his_o honour_n and_o give_v it_o to_o another_o in_o their_o service_n and_o prayer_n the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v make_v a_o intercessor_n for_o sin_n 2.5_o sin_n 1._o tim._n 2.5_o as_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o sole_a mediator_n unless_o the_o merit_n and_o mediation_n of_o another_o do_v come_v between_o let_v these_o form_n be_v a_o example_n 13._o example_n offic._n mar._n pag._n 13._o by_o the_o prayer_n and_o merit_n of_o the_o ever_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n and_o of_o all_o saint_n our_o lord_n bring_v we_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n amen_n again_o 27._o again_o ibid._n pag._n 27._o all_o hail_n o_o queen_n mother_n of_o mercy_n our_o life_n sweetness_n and_o hope_n all_o hail_n we_o exile_v the_o son_n of_o eve_n do_v cry_n to_o thou_o to_o thou_o we_o sigh_v groan_v and_o weep_v in_o this_o vale_n of_o tear_n therefore_o o_o thou_o our_o advocate_n turn_v those_o thy_o merciful_a eye_n unto_o we_o and_o show_v we_o after_o this_o exile_n bless_v jesus_n the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n o_o clement_a o_o pitiful_a o_o sweet_a virgin_n marie_n pray_v for_o we_o o_o holy_a mother_n of_o god_n again_o 33._o again_o ib._n pag._n 33._o marry_o that_o mother_n be_v of_o grace._n of_o mercy_n mother_n also_o art_n save_v and_o defend_v we_o from_o our_o so_o receive_v we_o when_o we_o hence_o depart_v 47._o depart_v ib._n pag._n 47._o the_o guiltless_a band_n unbind_v blind_a man_n their_o sight_n assure_n ill_a thing_n from_o we_o expel_v all_o good_a for_o we_o procure_v a_o mother_n show_v thyself_o he_o take_v our_o plaint_n by_o thou_o that_o be_v for_o we_o bear_v vouchsafe_v thy_o son_n to_o be_v grant_v that_o our_o life_n be_v pure_a make_v safe_a for_o we_o the_o way_n that_o while_o we_o jesus_n see_v our_o joy_n may_v last_v for_o ay_o again_o celeste_fw-la again_o missal_n sarisb_n 8._o septemb_n all_fw-es celeste_fw-la o_o virgin_n the_o only_a chaste_a mother_n lose_v our_o sin_n give_v the_o kingdom_n where_o the_o bless_a company_n do_v reign_v for_o thou_o as_o queen_n of_o the_o world_n be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o with_o thy_o son_n dispose_v all_o right_n again_o 101._o again_o antidotar_n animae_fw-la p._n 101._o o_o marie_n the_o star_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o haven_n of_o health_n to_o such_o as_o suffer_v shipwreck_n the_o godly_a guide_n the_o sweet_a patron_n of_o the_o miserable_a the_o learn_a advocate_n of_o the_o guilty_a the_o only_a hope_n of_o the_o desperate_a the_o saviour_n of_o sinner_n i_o beseech_v thou_o at_o my_o last_o day_n enlighten_v i_o with_o the_o beam_n of_o thy_o most_o clear_a face_n then_o there_o be_v no_o other_o hope_n but_o thou_o save_v i_o oh_o savioresse_n redeem_v i_o oh_o redeemer_n my_o sin_n load_v i_o the_o flesh_n defile_v i_o the_o devil_n lie_v in_o wait_n etc._n etc._n mariae_fw-la etc._n hist_o chor_n august_n commemor_fw-la virgin_n mariae_fw-la thou_o call_v thyself_o the_o handmaid_n of_o jesu_n christ_n but_o as_o god_n law_n teach_v thou_o be_v his_o lady_z mistress_n for_o right_a and_o reason_n will_v that_o the_o mother_n be_v above_o the_o son_n therefore_o pray_v he_o humble_o and_o command_v he_o from_z above_o that_o he_o lead_v we_o to_o his_o kingdom_n at_o the_o world_n end_n it_o be_v unpossible_a to_o excuse_v this_o kind_n of_o pray_v from_o formal_a idolatry_n wherein_o the_o same_o title_n be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n by_o the_o same_o merit_v ask_v of_o they_o that_o appertain_v to_o christ_n alone_o and_o yet_o 17_o yet_o suar._n tom_n 2._o disp_n 23._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr sanct_n beatit_fw-la c._n 17_o the_o jesuite_n at_o this_o day_n excuse_v it_o and_o will_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v reform_v yea_o we_o find_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a papist_n that_o be_v thing_n touch_v the_o virgin_n mary_n as_o bad_a and_o worse_o than_o all_o this_o dodechinus_n 470._o dodechinus_n append._n ad_fw-la maria._n scot._n pa._n 470._o write_v that_o a_o infant_n lie_v in_o the_o cradle_n see_v the_o virgin_n mary_n stand_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v most_o earnest_a intercession_n for_o the_o world_n biel_n 233._o biel_n in_o cano._n lect_n 8._o p._n 233._o say_v we_o fly_v principal_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v signify_v in_o hester_n the_o queen_n who_o come_v to_o appease_v king_n assuerus_n he_o say_v unto_o she_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v thou_o though_o thou_o ask_v the_o half_a of_o my_o kingdom_n so_o the_o father_n of_o heaven_n have_v his_o justice_n and_o his_o mercy_n as_o the_o chief_a good_n of_o his_o kingdom_n keep_v his_o justice_n to_o himself_o surrender_v his_o mercy_n to_o the_o virgin_n mother_n and_o 41._o and_o specul_fw-la exempl_a d._n 7._o n._n 41._o they_o tell_v a_o vision_n how_o christ_n prepare_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n there_o be_v two_o ladder_n set_v that_o reach_v to_o heaven_n the_o one_o red_a at_o the_o top_n whereof_o christ_n sit_v the_o other_o white_a at_o the_o top_n whereof_o the_o virgin_n marie_n sit_v and_o when_o the_o friar_n can_v not_o get_v up_o by_o the_o red_a ladder_n of_o christ_n but_o evermore_o fall_v down_o saint_n francis_n call_v they_o to_o the_o white_a ladder_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o there_o they_o
be_v receive_v 3._o receive_v bern._n senens_fw-la ser_fw-mi 51._o c._n 3._o another_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v incarnate_a more_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n then_o for_o all_o mankind_n beside_o bozius_n 681._o bozius_n de_fw-fr sign_n eccl_n tom_fw-mi 1._o pag._n 679._o &_o 681._o say_v the_o victory_n obtain_v over_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v altogether_o to_o christ_n himself_o but_o by_o christ_n it_o must_v also_o principal_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n see_v the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v the_o most_o noble_a part_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v chief_o refer_v to_o she_o to_o be_v hevab_n which_o signify_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o live_n namely_o because_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n marie_n principal_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o mankind_n and_o through_o she_o we_o increase_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o be_v multiply_v in_o charity_n and_o replenish_v heaven_n by_o the_o two_o cherubin_n upon_o the_o ark_n be_v signify_v christ_n and_o marie_n through_o who_o god_n be_v merciful_a and_o hear_v our_o prayer_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v something_o in_o the_o church_n to_o answer_v those_o old_a ceremony_n wherefore_o in_o the_o church_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o woman_n who_o be_v bless_v with_o christ_n gift_n and_o merit_n may_v bear_v all_o man_n to_o god_n and_o by_o who_o god_n may_v be_v merciful_a to_o us._n but_o this_o that_o galatinus_n write_v deserve_v the_o note_n he_o say_v 489._o say_v de_fw-fr arcan_a cathol_n verit_fw-la pag._n 489._o that_o for_o the_o love_n of_o jesus_n and_o mary_n god_n create_v the_o world_n for_o the_o love_n of_o the_o undefiled_a virgin_n who_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n god_n make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o make_v for_o her_o love_n but_o also_o preserve_v for_o it_o can_v no_o way_n stand_v our_o deed_n be_v so_o evil_a but_o that_o she_o by_o pray_v for_o we_o merciful_o uphold_v it_o 515._o it_o pag._n 515._o adam_n follow_v sin_n incur_v death_n but_o the_o glorious_a virgin_n and_o her_o son_n be_v no_o partaker_n of_o adam_n sin_n and_o altogether_o free_a from_o original_a sin_n of_o right_n be_v to_o be_v impassable_a and_o immortal_a but_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v needful_a for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v passable_a and_o mortal_a and_o so_o likewise_o the_o immaculate_a virgin_n be_v to_o bear_v a_o son_n passable_a and_o mortal_a which_o be_v to_o be_v one_o flesh_n with_o she_o and_o that_o can_v not_o natural_o be_v if_o she_o be_v impassable_a and_o immortal_a therefore_o she_o be_v also_o necessary_o mortal_a and_o so_o both_o the_o mother_n and_o the_o son_n die_v the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a virgin_n be_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n it_o be_v impossible_a she_o shall_v have_v die_v afore_o the_o passion_n of_o her_o son_n the_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o she_o also_o may_v come_v between_o god_n and_o we_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n see_v all_o thing_n must_v come_v between_o for_o the_o remission_n that_o come_v between_o when_o adam_n do_v it_o thus_o they_o join_v the_o virgin_n marie_n with_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o ascribe_v to_o she_o no_o less_o then_o to_o he_o the_o execution_n of_o all_o god_n mercy_n towards_o us._n brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n 21._o revelation_n pag._n 21._o say_v the_o virgin_n mary_n tell_v she_o that_o as_o adam_n and_o eve_n sell_v the_o world_n for_o one_o apple_n cord_n apple_n filius_fw-la meus_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la redemimus_fw-la mundum_fw-la quasi_fw-la cúm_fw-la uno_fw-la cord_n so_o her_o son_n and_o she_o redeem_v the_o world_n with_o one_o heart_n thus_o they_o have_v join_v a_o creature_n with_o christ_n and_o give_v his_o honour_n to_o another_o yea_o that_o honour_n of_o redeem_v and_o sustain_v the_o church_n which_o no_o creature_n be_v capable_a of_o and_o this_o idolatry_n they_o have_v commit_v not_o with_o the_o bless_a virgin_n alone_o who_o be_v bless_v and_o honourable_a though_o not_o to_o be_v worship_v but_o herself_o worship_v he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o her_o flesh_n 3._o flesh_n lib._n 3._o say_v epiphanius_n but_o even_o with_o the_o base_a of_o their_o saint_n that_o we_o may_v know_v in_o what_o vile_a account_n they_o hold_v christ_n the_o saviour_n 304._o saviour_n lib._n conform_v francis_n pa._n 304._o they_o say_v he_o imprint_v his_o five_o wound_n upon_o francis_n of_o assize_n the_o friar_n as_o if_o he_o also_o be_v to_o suffer_v for_o the_o world_n and_o redeem_v mankind_n and_o market_n 295._o market_n possevin_n bibl_n select_v p._n 295._o the_o verse_n of_o tursellinus_n the_o jesuite_n concern_v the_o same_o exue_fw-la franciscum_fw-la tunica_fw-la laceroque_fw-la cucullo_fw-la qui_fw-la franciscus_n erat_fw-la iam_fw-la tibi_fw-la christus_fw-la erit_fw-la francisci_fw-la exwiis_fw-la si_fw-la quâ_fw-la licet_fw-la endue_v christum_fw-la jam_fw-la franciscus_n erit_fw-la qui_fw-la modò_fw-la christus_fw-la erat_fw-la strip_v francis_n from_o his_o coat_n and_o cowl_n all_o naked_a and_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o that_o even_o saint_n francis_n be_v to_o christ_n will_v turn_v be_v again_o put_v francis_n coat_n and_o cowl_n on_o christ_n and_o mark_v the_o liar_n he_o that_o even_o now_o be_v jesus_n christ_n will_v francis_n be_v the_o friar_n the_o same_o conceit_n or_o a_o worse_o 200._o worse_o boz_n de_fw-fr sign_n eccles_n tom_fw-mi 2._o pag._n 200._o be_v thus_o express_v by_o another_o jesuit_n fr._n bencius_n sancte_fw-la patrum_fw-la spirans_fw-la christi_fw-la exspirantis_fw-la imago_fw-la tempore_fw-la quam_fw-la nullo_fw-la deleat_fw-la ulla_fw-la dies_fw-la quas_fw-la etenim_fw-la fer_v ipse_fw-la manus_fw-la fer_v ipse_fw-la pedesque_fw-la have_v tulit_fw-la ille_fw-la manus_fw-la have_v tulit_fw-la ille_fw-la pedes_fw-la nec_fw-la minus_fw-la &_o teli_fw-la transfixum_fw-la cuspide_fw-la pectus_fw-la quale_n tibi_fw-la patulo_fw-la pectore_fw-la vulnus_fw-la biat_fw-la cuncta_fw-la estis_fw-la simile_n illum_fw-la qui_fw-la fortè_fw-la verentur_fw-la reddere_fw-la te_fw-la saltem_fw-la cur_n imitentur_fw-la habent_fw-la o_o holy_a francis_n that_o of_o christ_n die_v upon_o the_o tree_n the_o very_a breathe_a image_n art_n for_o ever_o so_o to_o be_v what_o hand_n thou_o bear_v what_o foot_n thou_o have_v such_o hand_n such_o foot_n have_v he_o and_o such_o a_o wound_n wide_a in_o his_o breast_n as_o in_o thy_o breast_n we_o see_v in_o all_o thing_n you_o be_v both_o alike_o that_o he_o which_o be_v ashamed_a he_o to_o imitate_v may_v follow_v he_o at_o least_o and_o not_o be_v blame_v out_o of_o all_o this_o the_o reader_n must_v observe_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ascribe_v to_o saint_n and_o how_o far_o they_o intrude_v they_o into_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o take_v a_o scantling_n thereby_o of_o the_o religion_n and_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o offer_v this_o injury_n to_o his_o son_n 15_o let_v people_n therefore_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o view_v the_o papacy_n a_o title_n better_o how_o it_o have_v encroach_v upon_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o not_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n have_v escape_v the_o malice_n thereof_o but_o it_o be_v busy_o do_v with_o they_o all_o the_o which_o i_o think_v shall_v move_v they_o if_o no_o other_o thing_n can_v be_v object_v for_o what_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n be_v it_o thus_o to_o load_v the_o world_n with_o their_o tradition_n and_o fill_v the_o church_n with_o more_o than_o jewish_a idolatry_n and_o superstition_n moreover_o what_o have_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o do_v now_o after_o 1500._o year_n to_o make_v a_o new_a creed_n and_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o even_o the_o people_n of_o their_o own_o church_n be_v never_o bind_v to_o before_o this_o be_v a_o point_n worth_a the_o look_n at_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o add_v twelve_o more_o article_n to_o the_o creed_n and_o to_o bind_v man_n by_o oath_n and_o confession_n to_o receive_v they_o this_o show_v he_o to_o be_v the_o same_o 2.4_o same_o 2._o thess_n 2.4_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v god_n and_o his_o people_n to_o be_v in_o a_o miserable_a state_n that_o must_v have_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o faith_n increase_v diminish_v and_o change_v at_o his_o devotion_n i_o will_v let_v down_o this_o new_a creed_n word_n for_o word_n that_o such_o as_o have_v not_o see_v it_o may_v consider_v thereof_o and_o see_v the_o new_a faith_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v teach_v his_o child_n thus_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o pope_n fidei_fw-la pope_n bulla_n pij_fw-la 4._o super_fw-la
contain_v a_o discourse_n of_o saint_n augustine_n about_o man_n error_n against_o the_o scripture_n 10._o 15._o show_v that_o private_a and_o particular_a company_n may_v sometime_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n against_o a_o pretend_a catholic_n company_n 12._o 16._o show_v how_o the_o papist_n pretend_v at_o every_o word_n the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o mean_v nothing_o thereby_o but_o the_o pope_n determination_n 13._o 17._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v be_v what_o manner_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v invisible_a and_o that_o the_o papist_n say_v no_o less_o concern_v this_o matter_n than_o we_o do_v 17._o 18._o prove_v the_o true_a faith_n or_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o good_a mark_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o 24._o 19_o touch_v the_o place_n of_o saint_n austin_n contra_fw-la epist_n fundam_fw-la cap._n 5._o and_o the_o matter_n which_o the_o papist_n gather_v from_o it_o 28._o 20._o concern_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n in_o determine_v the_o matter_n of_o faith_n 31._o 21._o show_v that_o god_n true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v now_o and_o then_o be_v trouble_v with_o contention_n as_o great_a as_o be_v now_o among_o us._n 33._o 22._o object_v the_o behaviour_n of_o papist_n towards_o the_o divine_a scripture_n thereby_o to_o show_v their_o vary_v from_o that_o which_o in_o former_a time_n the_o primitive_a church_n of_o rome_n believe_v 35._o 23._o wherein_o by_o five_o example_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v vary_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o that_o which_o it_o believe_v former_o and_o since_o the_o time_n also_o that_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n 35._o 24._o touch_v the_o contention_n among_o the_o learned_a papist_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o how_o the_o papist_n live_v not_o in_o that_o unity_n that_o be_v pretend_v 35._o 25._o whererein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o pope_n determination_n be_v not_o think_v a_o infallible_a truth_n neither_o do_v the_o christian_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o unity_n submit_v themselves_o thereunto_o 36._o 26._o show_v that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v not_o so_o constant_o and_o uniform_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n judgement_n nor_o believe_v his_o infallible_a authority_n as_o be_v pretend_v 36._o 27._o show_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 36._o 28._o show_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o infallible_a judgement_n but_o may_v err_v and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n as_o any_o other_o man_n may_v 36._o 29._o declare_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n 36._o 30._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o to_o this_o day_n how_o peter_n suppose_a primacy_n be_v prove_v or_o what_o it_o contain_v but_o they_o be_v altogether_o uncertain_a in_o expound_v the_o main_a text_n of_o scripture_n whereupon_o they_o build_v it_o 36._o 31._o contain_v many_o complaint_n make_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o against_o their_o own_o church_n and_o people_n whereby_o it_o appear_v their_o life_n be_v worse_o than_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o protestant_n 38._o 32._o touch_v fast_n and_o how_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n therein_o and_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n be_v against_o it_o as_o the_o papist_n charge_v us._n 40._o 33._o concern_v auricular_a confession_n or_o shrift_n to_o a_o priest_n show_v the_o needlesnesse_n thereof_o and_o how_o it_o be_v a_o occasion_n rather_o than_o a_o remedy_n of_o sin_n 40._o 34._o concern_v the_o necessity_n or_o requisite_a condition_n of_o good_a work_n for_o our_o salvation_n show_v that_o the_o protestant_n hold_v it_o 40._o 35._o touch_v the_o merit_n of_o our_o work_n and_o what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v thereof_o 40._o 36._o answer_v those_o that_o accuse_v the_o protestant_n for_o hold_v that_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v god_n commandment_n and_o show_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v concern_v that_o matter_n 40._o 37._o whether_o the_o protestant_n think_v whatsoever_o we_o do_v be_v sin_n 40._o 38._o against_o the_o distinction_n of_o sin_n into_o mortal_a and_o venial_a 40._o 39_o touch_v the_o satisfaction_n that_o man_n be_v bind_v unto_o for_o their_o sin_n 40._o 40._o wherein_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o be_v expound_v and_o defend_v 40._o 41_o entreat_v of_o predestination_n and_o freewill_n as_o the_o protestant_n hold_v they_o and_o show_v that_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v these_o point_n do_v neither_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n nor_o lead_v man_n to_o be_v careless_a of_o there_o live_v nor_o infer_v any_o absolute_a necessity_n constrain_a we_o that_o we_o can_v do_v otherwise_o then_o we_o do_v 40._o 42._o again_o touch_v freewill_n wherein_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n be_v methodical_o propound_v and_o in_o every_o point_n compare_v with_o that_o which_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o the_o several_a question_n between_o they_o and_o we_o and_o the_o manner_n how_o and_o where_o they_o rise_v may_v be_v see_v distinct_o set_v down_o 40._o 43._o prove_v that_o god_n child_n without_o miracle_n or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n may_v be_v and_o be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o they_o have_v grace_n and_o shall_v be_v save_v 41._o 44._o answer_v that_o which_o the_o papist_n object_n touch_v the_o miracle_n of_o their_o church_n and_o saint_n therein_o 42._o 45._o touch_v monk_n and_o religious_a order_n hold_v among_o the_o papist_n which_o they_o say_v we_o have_v reject_v and_o forsake_v 42._o 46._o name_v certain_a point_n of_o the_o papist_n faith_n which_o direct_o tend_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o open_a sin_n and_o liberty_n of_o life_n 43._o 47._o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o matter_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n wherein_o it_o be_v show_v what_o we_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o and_o how_o farforth_o we_o depend_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o contemn_v clude_v and_o refuse_v both_o they_o and_o their_o own_o writer_n be_v plain_o discover_v 44._o 48_o contain_v a_o brief_a and_o direct_a answer_n to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o say_v we_o can_v assign_v a_o visible_a company_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o every_o point_n that_o we_o do_v ever_o since_o christ_n till_o now_o without_o intterruption_n 45._o 49._o object_v eight_o point_n for_o example_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o former_o be_v hold_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n latin_a service_n read_v the_o scripture_n priest_n marriage_n image_n supremacy_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n transubstantion_n 47._o 50._o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o indies_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n by_o the_o jesuite_n 49._o 51._o name_v seven_o point_n of_o the_o popish_a religion_n with_o the_o time_n when_o and_o manner_n how_o they_o gate_n into_o the_o church_n thereby_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a record_n to_o detect_v the_o novelty_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n 50._o 52._o show_v that_o the_o present_a religion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v observe_v and_o resist_v in_o all_o age_n as_o it_o come_v in_o and_o increase_v name_v withal_o the_o person_n that_o make_v the_o resistance_n and_o the_o point_n wherein_o and_o the_o time_n when_o from_o fifty_o year_n to_o fifty_o throughout_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n compendious_o observe_v out_o of_o history_n for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o their_o error_n that_o so_o much_o conceit_n the_o antiquity_n of_o papistry_n and_o think_v it_o be_v never_o control_v till_o luther_n time_n 50._o 53._o object_v seven_o thing_n against_o the_o outward_a succession_n of_o pope_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v clear_o demonstrate_v to_o have_v be_v interrupt_v and_o not_o to_o be_v any_o certain_a or_o infallible_a succession_n 55._o 54._o contain_v a_o brief_a narration_n touch_v the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o martin_n luther_n with_o the_o incredible_a report_n thereof_o make_v by_o his_o adversary_n &_o show_v how_o sundry_a pope_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v live_v and_o die_v worse_a than_o he_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v all_o report_n make_v of_o he_o be_v true_a 57_o 55._o show_v how_o uncertain_a and_o contrary_a the_o papist_n be_v among_o themselves_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o their_o priesthood_n in_o remit_v sin_n and_o concern_v the_o first_o institution_n of_o shrift_n where_o it_o begin_v de_fw-fr judice_fw-la fidei_fw-la admonitio_fw-la catholica_fw-la ad_fw-la lectorem_fw-la pvrus_n ab_fw-la impuro_fw-la num_fw-la differt_fw-la sanguine_fw-la sanguis_fw-la differt_fw-la iudicium_fw-la laudo_fw-la galene_n tuum_fw-la ritibus_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la secernitur_fw-la hoedus_fw-la ab_fw-la agno_fw-la vox_fw-la tua_fw-la
without_o testimony_n of_o miracle_n give_v assurance_n to_o other_o that_o he_o be_v thus_o teach_v especial_o in_o such_o sort_n to_o make_v they_o forsake_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o by_o plain_a proof_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n they_o do_v know_v to_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n nay_o they_o ought_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o believe_v he_o but_o rather_o to_o esteem_v he_o as_o one_o of_o those_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v ezech._n 13._o vae_fw-la prophetis_fw-la insipientibus_fw-la qui_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la spiritum_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o nihil_fw-la vident_fw-la dicunt_fw-la ait_fw-la dominus_fw-la cum_fw-la ego_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la locutus_fw-la neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a that_o these_o man_n allege_v word_n of_o scripture_n for_o that_o which_o they_o say_v because_o every_o sectmaister_n allege_v scripture_n for_o his_o opinion_n yea_o the_o devil_n himself_o for_o his_o purpose_n bring_v word_n of_o scripture_n math._n 4._o the_o answer_n 1_o these_o two_o conclusion_n may_v easy_o be_v grant_v without_o further_a examination_n if_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o a_o further_a reach_n in_o they_o they_o the_o word_n pretend_v for_o what_o protestant_a think_v that_o any_o private_a man_n or_o any_o company_n of_o man_n how_o learned_a soever_o or_o any_o man_n natural_a wit_n and_o learning_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o honour_n we_o give_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n only_o but_o the_o jesuit_n aim_v at_o those_o which_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n be_v but_o private_a man_n &_o particular_a church_n have_v examine_v &_o refuse_v the_o roman_a faith_n as_o wicklieffe_n hus_n luther_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n scotland_n and_o germany_n have_v do_v that_o so_o have_v in_o his_o former_a conclusion_n pluck_v the_o scripture_n from_o you_o he_o may_v also_o in_o these_o two_o bereave_v you_o of_o such_o faithful_a pastor_n as_o god_n have_v stir_v up_o from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o instruct_v you_o and_o when_o he_o have_v do_v in_o his_o last_o conclusion_n obtrude_v upon_o you_o his_o papal_a consistory_n if_o he_o mean_v private_a man_n wit_n learning_n and_o company_n as_o they_o be_v oppose_v to_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a he_o say_v well_o for_o no_o such_o private_a man_n wit_n learning_n or_o company_n may_v be_v hear_v against_o the_o present_a doctrine_n and_o this_o be_v well_o prove_v in_o the_o jesuit_n discourse_n but_o use_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o common_a and_o usual_a 48._o usual_a privatum_fw-la accipio_fw-la ut_fw-la opponitur_fw-la communi_fw-la spiritui_fw-la mart._n peres_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la part_n 2_o assert_v 4._o pag._n 48._o which_o the_o papist_n always_o do_v his_o conclusion_n be_v untrue_a viz._n that_o nothing_o may_v be_v receive_v which_o private_a man_n or_o particular_a company_n teach_v against_o that_o which_o be_v surmise_a to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o the_o teacher_n be_v many_o or_o few_o public_a or_o private_a person_n as_o long_o as_o they_o teach_v the_o faith_n and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n true_o for_o a_o true_a exposition_n be_v public_a though_o the_o company_n that_o give_v it_o be_v private_a and_o a_o false_a exposition_n be_v private_a though_o the_o church_n that_o urge_v it_o be_v never_o so_o public_a yea_o though_o it_o come_v from_o a_o general_a council_n and_o so_o this_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v concern_v private_a man_n and_o company_n that_o they_o may_v sometime_o be_v infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n against_o a_o public_a multitude_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o example_n and_o have_v the_o scripture_n for_o their_o foundation_n may_v teach_v and_o believe_v against_o it_o in_o which_o case_n though_o their_o person_n and_o wit_n and_o natural_a learning_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o follow_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o rule_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o hear_v they_o this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o hold_v and_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n in_o these_o conclusion_n gird_v at_o now_o i_o come_v to_o examine_v his_o argument_n against_o it_o 2_o first_o he_o say_v all_o man_n wit_n and_o learning_n be_v humane_a natural_a and_o fallible_a therefore_o no_o man_n wit_n or_o learning_n can_v be_v the_o rule_n which_o must_v sustain_v our_o faith_n divine_a supernatural_a and_o infallible_a whereto_o i_o answer_v grant_v the_o whole_a argument_n for_o we_o say_v not_o any_o man_n learning_n be_v the_o rule_n or_o any_o company_n of_o man_n the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o the_o contrary_a as_o i_o have_v say_v only_o we_o hold_v they_o may_v be_v so_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o they_o may_v interpret_v the_o scripture_n true_o and_o infallible_o against_o a_o company_n as_o big_a as_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o this_o be_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o the_o second_o conclusion_n 3_o next_o in_o his_o three_o conclusion_n he_o say_v no_o private_a man_n can_v be_v this_o rule_n at_o least_o when_o he_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n because_o saint_n paul_n say_v if_o any_o preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n then_o than_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v this_o text_n be_v 1.8_o be_v rhem._n upon_o gal._n 1.8_o common_o urge_v against_o luther_n and_o caluin_n for_o preach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n believe_v whereby_o you_o may_v see_v what_o the_o jesuite_n drive_v at_o in_o these_o two_o conclusion_n but_o i_o answer_v though_o this_o text_n prove_v that_o no_o private_a man_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o no_o teach_n may_v be_v receive_v against_o the_o scripture_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o it_o against_o such_o as_o resist_v a_o false_a church_n though_o they_o be_v man_n never_o so_o private_a for_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v not_o which_o every_o church_n call_v itself_o catholic_a may_v possible_o hold_v and_o of_o it_o he_o say_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v that_o preach_v otherwise_o now_o 34._o now_o phil._n 3.1_o iren._n l._n 3._o ca._n 1._o niceph._n callist_n l._n 2._o c._n 34._o all_o that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o he_o accurse_v none_o but_o such_o as_o teach_v against_o they_o forbid_v all_o man_n to_o preach_v against_o the_o church_n doctrine_n consent_v with_o the_o word_n but_o when_o any_o thing_n deflect_v from_o that_o it_o may_v and_o must_v be_v except_v against_o even_o by_o private_a man_n else_o this_o very_a text_n accurse_v they_o for_o consent_v to_o it_o thus_o 11._o thus_o contra_fw-la lit_fw-fr petilian_n donat._n l._n 3._o c._n 6._o &_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 11._o austin_n expound_v the_o place_n if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n declare_v unto_o you_o either_o concern_v christ_n or_o his_o church_n or_o any_o other_o matter_n belong_v to_o our_o faith_n or_o life_n any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v see_v austin_n prefer_v the_o scripture_n above_o all_o thing_n expound_v the_o place_n against_o such_o as_o teach_v any_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n let_v the_o jesuit_n mark_v this_o but_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o jesuite_n beg_v the_o question_n talk_v idle_o of_o his_o roman_a church_n 4_o his_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v his_o three_o conclusion_n be_v that_o the_o private_a spirit_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o plain_o know_v whereto_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v false_a mean_v private_a as_o the_o jesuite_n do_v &_o i_o have_v distinguish_v it_o for_o a_o small_a company_n hold_v against_o a_o multitude_n as_o 23._o as_o 1._o reg._n 22._o 23._o michaiah_n do_v against_o 400._o prophet_n may_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a &_o plain_o know_v but_o neither_o themselves_n nor_o any_o other_o can_v be_v sure_a they_o be_v thus_o teach_v i_o answer_v this_o be_v untrue_a for_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o light_n and_o know_v by_o the_o son_n of_o light_n and_o by_o it_o they_o may_v be_v assure_v now_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o assure_v be_v infallible_o sure_a they_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o 3.16_o for_o 2._o tim._n 3.16_o all_o scripture_n be_v inspire_v of_o god_n and_o contain_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o there_o be_v no_o promise_n in_o the_o scripture_n to_o assure_v he_o he_o be_v thus_o teach_v yes_o for_o the_o scripture_n promise_v that_o every_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n that_o consent_v with_o it_o and_o
apostle_n if_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o church_n so_o that_o if_o that_o be_v the_o sense_n which_o the_o jesuite_n set_v down_o than_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v equal_a privilege_n from_o error_n with_o peter_n and_o particular_a church_n and_o man_n shall_v be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o whole_a church_n itself_o which_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o jesuite_n will_v not_o grant_v three_o saint_n austin_n 9_o austin_n tract_n 96._o in_o joh._n tom_n 9_o expound_v the_o word_n as_o i_o do_v he_o shall_v teach_v or_o lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n this_o i_o think_v can_v be_v fulfil_v in_o any_o man_n mind_n in_o this_o life_n for_o who_o be_v he_o live_v in_o this_o body_n so_o corrupt_a and_o load_v the_o soul_n that_o can_v know_v all_o truth_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v who_o earnest_n we_o have_v receive_v that_o hereafter_o we_o may_v come_v to_o the_o fullness_n itself_o whereof_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v then_o shall_v we_o see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n and_o now_o i_o know_v but_o in_o part_n but_o then_o i_o shall_v know_v as_o i_o be_o know_v not_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o l●fe_n only_o but_o all_o that_o which_o shall_v befall_v we_o till_o the_o perfection_n come_v the_o lord_n by_o the_o love_n of_o his_o spirit_n have_v promise_v say_v he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o jesuite_n exposition_n that_o he_o may_v remain_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o not_o only_o for_o six_o hundred_o year_n it_o smell_v either_o of_o his_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n for_o which_o of_o we_o ever_o yet_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n after_o six_o hundred_o year_n let_v the_o papist_n deal_v sincere_o and_o leave_v their_o coin_v 6_o the_o four_o place_n be_v math._n 28.19_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n whereto_o i_o answer_v first_o these_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o not_o to_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n now_o i_o grant_v their_o teach_n be_v infallible_a and_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o hear_v it_o for_o they_o teach_v that_o which_o afterward_o they_o write_v in_o the_o scripture_n yet_o so_o they_o teach_v and_o with_o such_o commission_n that_o 17.11_o that_o act_n 17.11_o the_o people_n be_v commend_v which_o examine_v their_o teach_n by_o the_o scripture_n second_o we_o grant_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v commission_n to_o teach_v likewise_o but_o that_o prove_v not_o all_o their_o teach_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a because_o natural_a corruption_n hang_v on_o they_o they_o may_v fail_v in_o that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o inconvenience_n bind_v we_o sometime_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v false_a for_o the_o bond_n have_v a_o limitation_n that_o we_o hear_v they_o so_o far_o as_o they_o teach_v agreeable_a with_o the_o scripture_n and_o no_o further_o and_o by_o those_o scripture_n we_o may_v relieve_v ourselves_o if_o they_o chance_v to_o teach_v false_o 7_o the_o five_o place_n be_v luk._n 10.16_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o which_o word_n be_v speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n all_o who_o teach_n and_o write_v be_v true_a infallible_o and_o therefore_o be_v sufficient_a warrant_n to_o the_o hearer_n to_o accept_v it_o but_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n and_o ordinary_a pastor_n therein_o 23._o therein_o ferus_fw-la lib._n 3_o in_o math._n cap._n 23._o they_o must_v be_v understand_v with_o this_o caution_n if_o they_o hold_v they_o to_o the_o instruction_n that_o christ_n give_v they_o if_o they_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n deliver_v his_o word_n true_o and_o consonant_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o such_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v as_o christ_n himself_o else_o 14.32_o else_o 1._o joh._n 4.1_o 1._o cor._n 14.32_o we_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n and_o judge_v of_o the_o prophet_n this_o place_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v conditional_o prove_v not_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n conclude_v absolute_o and_o universal_o 8_o the_o sixth_o place_n be_v math._n 23.2_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v which_o word_n i_o grant_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o pharisee_n that_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n therefore_o i_o answer_v three_o thing_n 1._o i_o mislike_v it_o not_o that_o he_o compare_v the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n of_o his_o church_n to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n 2._o by_o moses_n chair_n be_v mean_v neither_o outward_a succession_n nor_o judicial_a authority_n but_o the_o profession_n of_o moses_n law_n 3._o 4._o 3._o si_fw-mi quae_fw-la cumque_fw-la dixerint_fw-la nobis_fw-la ea_fw-la facere_fw-la iubemur_fw-la cur_n alio_fw-la loco_fw-la christus_fw-la cavere_fw-la voluit_fw-la à_fw-la fe●mento_fw-la pharisaeorum_fw-la cur_n rursum_fw-la eorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la exemplo_fw-la etiam_fw-la proprio_fw-la contemnere_fw-la docuit_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ergo_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la propriae_fw-la puritati_fw-la evangelij_fw-la admiscere_fw-la possunt_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la audiendi_fw-la sed_fw-la sunt_fw-la etiam_fw-la refutandi_fw-la id_fw-la ergo_fw-la prae_fw-la cavit_fw-la christus_fw-la ne_fw-la plebs_fw-la malis_fw-la docentium_fw-la exemplis_fw-la ad_fw-la contemptionem_fw-la verae_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la inducatur_fw-la nunc_fw-la ergo_fw-la quae_fw-la dixetint_n nobis_fw-la pharisaei_n eadem_fw-la facere_fw-la iubet_fw-la christus_fw-la cum_fw-la super_fw-la cathediam_fw-la mosis_fw-la federint_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la legem_fw-la enarraverint_fw-la docucrint_fw-la proposuerint_fw-la can._n loc_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 4._o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o simple_o command_v the_o people_n to_o obey_v the_o pharisee_n in_o all_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n or_o teach_v they_o that_o their_o local_a succession_n do_v privilege_v they_o from_o error_n but_o only_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o for_o their_o evil_a life_n be_v offend_v at_o that_o which_o they_o may_v at_o any_o time_n teach_v well_o because_o though_o their_o life_n be_v wicked_a yet_o that_o which_o they_o teach_v out_o of_o moses_n chair_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o moses_n law_n must_v be_v follow_v now_o this_o be_v far_o from_o enjoin_v they_o in_o all_o point_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n as_o i_o prove_v by_o four_o reason_n first_o 3._o first_o jansen_n concord_n evang_v cap._n 120._o em._n sa._n notat_fw-la in_o math._n 23._o v._n 3._o the_o popish_a expositor_n say_v this_o place_n bind_v we_o not_o to_o obey_v they_o if_o they_o teach_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a for_o that_o be_v to_o teach_v against_o the_o chair_n which_o exposition_n grant_v we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o hear_v they_o in_o all_o point_n without_o limitation_n as_o 328._o as_o ecce_fw-la sine_fw-la limitatione_n aliqua_fw-la martin_n peres_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o pag._n 328._o a_o popish_a bishop_n speak_v with_o the_o jesuite_n and_o suppose_v they_o may_v teach_v untrue_o in_o some_o point_n second_o if_o i_o may_v refuse_v they_o in_o some_o point_n than_o hence_o it_o follow_v unanswerable_o that_o there_o be_v another_o rule_n whereby_o i_o may_v be_v direct_v in_o hear_v for_o else_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v those_o point_n wherein_o he_o must_v follow_v his_o teacher_n from_o those_o wherein_o he_o must_v not_o three_o the_o pharisee_n teach_v many_o error_n and_o blasphemy_n both_o 23.13_o both_o math._n 5.20_o &_o 25.3_o &_o 23.13_o against_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o 19.7.15_o and_o marc._n 14.64_o joh_n 7.48_o &_o 8_o 13._o &_o 9.22.24_o &_o 19.7.15_o against_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o regard_n our_o saviour_n bid_v his_o disciple_n 26.6.12_o disciple_n mat._n 26.6.12_o to_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n which_o be_v their_o doctrine_n wherein_o he_o have_v gainsay_v himself_o if_o by_o moses_n chair_n he_o have_v mean_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n or_o by_o those_o word_n have_v command_v we_o in_o all_o point_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o prelate_n doctrine_n for_o then_o the_o jew_n must_v not_o have_v honour_a parent_n nor_o love_v their_o enemy_n nor_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o the_o pharisee_n teach_v against_o these_o thing_n last_o ibid._n last_o gloss_n in_o mat._n 23.2_o nicol._n gorr_n ibid._n arias_n m●nt●n_n elucid_n ibid._n the_o papist_n themselves_o expound_v the_o place_n write_v that_o to_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n be_v to_o teach_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o to_o command_v thing_n agreeable_a thereunto_o that_o be_v to_o say_v true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o
ministry_n thereof_o may_v be_v a_o condition_n subordinate_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o that_o which_o be_v the_o rule_n as_o 4.29.39_o as_o joh._n 4.29.39_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n be_v a_o good_a mean_n to_o bring_v her_o countryman_n to_o christ_n that_o know_v he_o not_o and_o yet_o their_o belief_n be_v not_o build_v on_o she_o 42._o she_o ver_fw-la 42._o but_o on_o that_o which_o she_o reveal_v to_o they_o and_o 6.16_o and_o jer._n 6.16_o god_n bid_v we_o by_o his_o prophet_n stand_v by_o the_o way_n and_o behold_v and_o ask_v for_o the_o old_a way_n which_o be_v the_o good_a way_n though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o person_n to_o be_v ask_v be_v our_o direction_n no_o further_o then_o while_o they_o point_v to_o the_o old_a way_n and_o the_o prophet_n bid_v 2.12_o bid_v hag._n 2.12_o ask_v the_o priest_n concern_v the_o law_n and_o say_v 2.7_o say_v mal._n 2.7_o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o they_o shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n for_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n yet_o these_o priest_n many_o time_n speak_v untrue_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o deceive_a other_o and_o so_o may_v it_o happen_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n 2_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o church_n abide_v still_o the_o same_o that_o saint_n paul_n call_v it_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v which_o that_o i_o may_v show_v the_o better_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o 23._o that_o jul._n pol._n onomast_n lib._n 8._o pag._n 454._o scol_n aristoph_n nub._n rosin_n antiq_fw-la rom._n l._n 8_o c._n 2._o alex._n ab_fw-la alexand._n genial_a dierum_fw-la l._n 6._o c._n 23._o in_o old_a time_n the_o gentile_n use_v to_o write_v their_o law_n in_o table_n and_o so_o hang_v they_o up_o on_o pillar_n of_o stone_n that_o the_o people_n may_v read_v they_o as_o proclamation_n be_v nail_v to_o post_n in_o market_n town_n and_o sometime_o 〈◊〉_d sometime_o phavorin_n &_o hesych_n lexic_fw-la verbo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o white_v the_o pillar_n and_o so_o write_v the_o law_n upon_o it_o rhet._n it_o lexic_fw-la decem_o rhet._n harpocration_n say_v they_o rear_v up_o straight_a pillar_n of_o stone_n and_o so_o write_v their_o law_n upon_o they_o and_o it_o be_v also_o a_o ordinary_a thing_n that_o they_o have_v other_o pillar_n like_o the_o pasquil_n in_o rome_n 〈◊〉_d rome_n eustach_n il._n λ._n suid._n verbo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereupon_o whosoever_o list_v hang_v their_o epigram_n or_o libel_n that_o they_o will_v have_v know_v now_o the_o apostle_n describe_v the_o church_n liken_v it_o to_o one_o of_o these_o pillar_n who_o use_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o show_v that_o which_o hang_v thereon_o itself_o not_o be_v the_o law_n but_o that_o whereupon_o the_o law_n be_v hang_v for_o so_o the_o true_a faith_n write_v in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereunto_o the_o world_n will_v give_v no_o testimony_n be_v fasten_v to_o the_o church_n as_o to_o a_o stately_a pillar_n and_o strong_a supporter_n that_o there_o it_o may_v be_v see_v and_o hold_v out_o unto_o us._n hence_o the_o jesuite_n can_v challenge_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o church_n be_v unto_o we_o a_o witness_n and_o upholder_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o always_o preserve_v it_o which_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o forget_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o hold_v out_o the_o rule_n and_o another_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n itself_o and_o he_o that_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o supporter_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o say_v withal_o that_o the_o pastor_n can_v never_o err_v or_o fail_v in_o deliver_v any_o part_n thereof_o the_o apostle_n say_v the_o former_a but_o the_o jesuite_n only_o beside_o the_o text_n affirm_v the_o latter_a 3_o this_o exposition_n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v for_o four_o reason_n first_o it_o be_v call_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n then_o 5.27_o then_o eph._n 5.27_o elsewhere_o it_o be_v call_v glorious_a without_o spot_n or_o blemish_n or_o blame_v but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o purity_n there_o mention_v be_v mingle_v with_o some_o imperfection_n therefore_o it_o be_v also_o certain_a this_o uphold_v of_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o free_a from_o all_o error_n second_o paul_n in_o this_o place_n send_v not_o timothy_n to_o learn_v of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o shall_v do_v if_o the_o jesuit_n conceit_n be_v sound_a but_o 14.15_o but_o vers_fw-la 14.15_o wish_v he_o to_o teach_v the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n three_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o these_o word_n be_v true_a of_o every_o particular_a church_n but_o of_o every_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o it_o can_v err_v for_o we_o see_v they_o may_v as_o do_v 2.4_o do_v act._n 20.30_o apoc._n 2.4_o this_o of_o ephesus_n concern_v which_o the_o apostle_n say_v here_o it_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n four_o if_o this_o place_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o of_o it_o all_o man_n must_v learn_v the_o infallible_a truth_n then_o see_v 3._o see_v bellar._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 5._o greg._n de_fw-fr valent_n comment_n theo._n tom_n 3._o disp_n 1._o q._n 1._o assert_v 3._o the_o papist_n hold_v their_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n to_o be_v the_o church_n i_o demand_v what_o be_v that_o which_o must_v teach_v they_o for_o the_o church_n do_v not_o seeing_z they_o be_v the_o church_n themselves_o 4_o or_o if_o the_o jesuite_n dote_v upon_o his_o own_o exposition_n then_o let_v he_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o other_o papist_n have_v expound_v before_o he_o 50._o he_o staphyl_n apol._n part_n 1._o &_o s●apl_n his_o translat_n pag_n 50._o who_o say_v the_o apostle_n call_v the_o church_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n ground_n the_o largeness_n of_o christendom_n by_o the_o word_n pillar_n the_o continual_a smooth_a and_o not_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o scholar_n upon_o who_o all_o truth_n be_v build_v which_o exposition_n differ_v from_o this_o of_o the_o jesuite_n may_v give_v he_o occasion_n to_o look_v better_o into_o the_o text_n and_o at_o least_o mistrust_v his_o collection_n therfrom_o till_o he_o have_v confer_v with_o his_o fellow_n for_o upon_o the_o reckon_n it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o until_o the_o friar_n and_o jesuite_n of_o late_a begin_v to_o hammer_v the_o scripture_n there_o be_v never_o any_o that_o out_o of_o they_o will_v deliver_v his_o conclusion_n but_o the_o contrary_n the_o apostle_n writing_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o supporter_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v 1._o say_v lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o irenaeus_n the_o gospel_n be_v the_o gound_z and_o stay_v of_o the_o church_n say_v 11._o say_v lib._n 3_o c._n 11._o the_o same_o irenaeus_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n say_v loc_fw-la say_v hom._n in_o hunc_fw-la loc_fw-la chrysostome_n the_o divine_a scripture_n must_v teach_v who_o have_v the_o true_a church_n these_o be_v the_o proof_n these_o be_v the_o foundation_n these_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o cause_n say_v 16._o say_v de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n cap._n 16._o austin_n 5_o the_o word_n of_o austin_n allege_v by_o the_o jesuite_n be_v good_a but_o they_o have_v be_v better_a if_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v out_o the_o beginning_n for_o thus_o they_o lie_v 33._o lie_v contra._n crescon_n gram_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 33._o for_o somuch_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v deceive_v we_o let_v he_o who_o fear_v lest_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n concern_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o donatist_n shall_v deceive_v he_o inquire_v that_o church_n judgement_n of_o it_o which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o all_o doubtfulness_n do_v demonstrate_v wherein_o aust_n say_v not_o the_o church_n be_v the_o rule_n or_o the_o church_n can_v err_v but_o only_o as_o the_o jesuite_n himself_o note_v that_o the_o judgement_n thereof_o shall_v be_v inquire_v his_o meaning_n be_v that_o in_o the_o question_n of_o rebaptise_v because_o in_o cresconius_n his_o supposition_n the_o scripture_n say_v nothing_o of_o it_o such_o as_o be_v doubtful_a may_v ask_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n &_o there_o they_o shall_v learn_v cresconius_n to_o be_v in_o a_o error_n wherein_o the_o jesuit_n shall_v find_v we_o to_o consent_v with_o austin_n for_o do_v he_o think_v we_o allow_v not_o the_o church_n her_o ministry_n or_o that_o we_o silence_v she_o from_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n or_o that_o we_o turn_v away_o the_o people_n
whereby_o all_o man_n at_o all_o time_n may_v come_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n appoint_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n whereby_o all_o man_n at_o all_o time_n may_v come_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n this_o argument_n be_v faulty_a two_o way_n first_o in_o the_o assumption_n for_o the_o church_n be_v not_o this_o rule_n as_o totum_fw-la as_o digr_n 3._o &_o §_o 14_o per_fw-la totum_fw-la i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a neither_o have_v the_o jesuite_n already_o prove_v it_o but_o only_o say_v it_o as_o here_o he_o beg_v it_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o before_o he_o bring_v to_o prove_v this_o 5_o but_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o subordinate_a mean_n for_o the_o bring_v man_n to_o salvation_n in_o that_o god_n teach_v his_o elect_a by_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o 16._o thereof_o ad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la salutem_fw-la ac_fw-la aeternam_fw-la vitam_fw-la nemo_fw-la pervenit_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la habet_fw-la caput_fw-la christum_n habere_fw-la autem_fw-la caput_fw-la christum_n nemo_fw-la poterit_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la corpore_fw-la fuerit_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl_n c._n 16._o neither_o can_v any_o man_n be_v make_v the_o child_n of_o god_n except_o first_o he_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o church_n but_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o church_n be_v therefore_o visible_a or_o know_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n because_o visiblenesse_n and_o invisiblenesse_n be_v but_o difference_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n outward_a state_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o elect_n may_v partake_v her_o ministry_n in_o either_o of_o these_o estate_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o may_v be_v effectual_o join_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o it_o do_v not_o visible_o appear_v in_o outward_a show_n by_o the_o ditection_n of_o god_n word_n and_o spirit_n and_o by_o the_o teach_n of_o a_o few_o faithful_a christian_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o world_n as_o wheat_n do_v in_o his_o chaff_n and_o so_o consequent_o god_n elect_v never_o want_v necessary_a mean_n of_o knowledge_n &_o salvation_n because_o some_o part_n of_o the_o church_n or_o other_o first_o or_o last_o though_o hide_a from_o the_o world_n be_v manifest_v to_o they_o 6_o as_o for_o the_o reprobate_n i_o grant_v that_o many_o time_n the_o church_n be_v neither_o know_v to_o they_o nor_o yield_v they_o any_o mean_n whereby_o the_o faith_n may_v be_v know_v and_o i_o add_v further_o that_o this_o be_v god_n very_a ordinance_n whereby_o he_o use_v to_o punish_v their_o obstinacy_n for_o as_o sometime_o 12.40_o sometime_o esa_n 6.9_o joh._n 12.40_o he_o take_v away_o their_o heart_n and_o sometime_o 2.11_o sometime_o 2._o thess_n 2.11_o give_v they_o over_o to_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n so_o sometime_o he_o send_v 8.12_o send_v amos_n 8.12_o a_o famine_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o shall_v wander_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o north_n to_o the_o east_n they_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o to_o seek_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o and_o sometime_o 1.20_o sometime_o apoca._n 2.5_o compare_v with_o 1.20_o take_v away_o the_o candlestick_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n as_o i_o have_v touch_v 2._o touch_v §_o 3._o nu_fw-la 2._o before_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n this_o i_o say_v be_v true_a not_o universal_o in_o every_o sense_n but_o as_o the_o apostle_n mean_v it_o who_o sense_n be_v declare_v by_o 14_o by_o enchir._n c._n 103._o &_o count_n julian._n l._n 4._o c_o 8._o &_o de_fw-la praedest_fw-la sanct_n c._n 8._o &_o the_o corrept_v &_o great_a c._n 14_o austin_n thus_o no_o man_n be_v save_v but_o who_o he_o will_v save_v not_o that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o he_o will_v not_o have_v save_v but_o that_o none_o be_v save_v but_o who_o he_o will_v and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v entreat_v that_o he_o will_v because_o what_o he_o will_v of_o necessity_n must_v be_v do_v and_o by_o 31._o by_o de_fw-fr incarnate_a &_o great_a c._n 31._o fulgentius_n thus_o by_o all_o these_o man_n who_o god_n will_v have_v come_v to_o salvation_n be_v mean_v not_o altogether_o all_o mankind_n but_o the_o university_n of_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v who_o therefore_o be_v call_v all_o man_n because_o they_o all_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n save_v out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o all_o and_o that_o out_o of_o every_o nation_n condition_n age_n language_n and_o province_n the_o same_o exposition_n be_v also_o give_v by_o 46._o by_o aug._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la haymo_n &_o anselm_n in_o 1._o tim._n 2_o mag._n 1._o d._n 46._o other_o and_o commend_v by_o 4._o by_o alliac_n c._n 1._o q._n 14._o art_n 1._o ad_fw-la 1._o pag._n 206._o durand_n 1._o d._n 46._o qu._n 1._o ad_fw-la 2._o p._n 134._o greg._n de_fw-fr valent._n tom_n 1._o p._n 325._o &_o tom_n 2_o p._n 894_o biel._n lect_n 68_o light_v f._n pa._n 189._o vocabul_n theol_fw-it verbo_fw-la voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la antece_v greg._n arimin_n 1._o d._n 40._o art_n 2._o ad_fw-la 4._o learned_a papist_n but_o thomas_n prefer_v it_o before_o all_o other_o and_o timot._n and_o lect._n 1._o in_o 2._o c._n 1._o ep_v ad_fw-la timot._n say_v it_o agree_v best_a with_o the_o apostle_n intent_n and_o emmanuel_n sa_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n god_n say_v 4_o say_v notat_fw-la in_o 1._o tim._n 2_o 4_o he_o will_v all_o man_n be_v save_v he_o will_v all_o man_n that_o be_v all_o kind_n of_o man_n not_o every_o man_n for_o if_o he_o will_v absolute_o than_o he_o will_v do_v it_o which_o be_v so_o the_o jesuite_n may_v see_v there_o be_v no_o such_o necessity_n that_o god_n shall_v provide_v the_o mean_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n to_o instruct_v all_o man_n universal_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o never_o will_v absolute_o that_o all_o man_n universal_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o as_o saint_n austin_n medium_n austin_n ep._n 107._o add_v vital_a post_fw-la medium_n speak_v it_o be_v even_o by_o child_n manifest_a that_o many_o be_v not_o save_v not_o because_o themselves_o but_o because_o god_n will_v not_o confute_v the_o contrary_a as_o pelagianisme_n and_o it_o be_v no_o absurdity_n to_o say_v of_o such_o that_o they_o want_v 17.30_o want_v mat._n 10.5_o act._n 14.16_o &_o 16.6_o &_o 17.30_o through_o god_n judgement_n many_o time_n secret_a but_o always_o just_a 2.47_o just_a rom._n 1.16_o 1._o cor._n 1.21_o rom._n 10.14_o act._n 2.47_o necessary_a mean_n whereby_o they_o shall_v attain_v to_o faith_n and_o salvation_n god_n will_v the_o mean_v no_o otherwise_o then_o he_o do_v the_o end_n that_o be_v by_o no_o absolute_a will_v formal_o abide_v in_o himself_o but_o only_o conditional_o whereas_o his_o will_n concern_v the_o elect_a be_v his_o absolute_a purpose_n to_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n be_v always_o join_v with_o such_o work_n as_o make_v it_o not_o only_o possible_a or_o conditional_a but_o also_o certain_a to_o be_v effect_v and_o if_o nothing_o else_o can_v teach_v the_o jesuite_n thus_o much_o yet_o he_o may_v have_v learn_v it_o of_o his_o own_o word_n for_o if_o god_n will_v nothing_o which_o he_o know_v impossible_a then_o do_v he_o not_o will_v the_o salvation_n of_o such_o as_o he_o know_v to_o be_v 4._o be_v rom._n 9.22_o 1._o pet._n 2.8_o jude_n vers_fw-la 4._o the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n prepare_v to_o destruction_n and_o if_o the_o jesuite_n think_v yet_o to_o answer_v and_o unfold_v the_o matter_n by_o apply_v 29._o apply_v magist_n 1._o d._n 46_o &_o 47._o &_o ibi_fw-la scolast_n communiter_fw-la omnes_fw-la damascen_n l._n 2._o orthod_n fid_fw-we c._n 29._o the_o school_n distinction_n of_o will_n antecedent_n and_o consequent_a then_o let_v he_o open_v his_o eye_n and_o consider_v that_o this_o antecedent_n will_v take_v it_o as_o rest_n as_o voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la antecedens_fw-la est_fw-la qua_fw-la that_fw-mi alicui_fw-la naturalia_fw-la vel_fw-la aliqua_fw-la bona_fw-la antecedentia_fw-la quibus_fw-la potest_fw-la aliquid_fw-la consequi_fw-la ockan_n &_o camerac_n 1._o q._n 14._o art_n 1._o and_o so_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v describe_v 1.46.1.2_o describe_v quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deus_fw-la voluntate_fw-la antecedente_fw-la solùm_fw-la non_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la vult_fw-la dur._n 1.46.1.2_o neither_o be_v any_o will_v simple_o proper_o and_o formal_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v god_n will_v in_o the_o place_n allege_v neither_o do_v it_o necessary_o include_v the_o certain_a publish_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o revelation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o but_o interna_fw-la vocatio_fw-la gentibus_fw-la nunquam_fw-la defuit_fw-la nam_fw-la iuxta_fw-la opinionem_fw-la scoti_n
they_o and_o to_o no_o more_o the_o order_n be_v give_v tell_v the_o church_n beside_o this_o speech_n be_v like_a that_o of_o ●_o of_o cap._n 2._o v._o ●_o malachi_n the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o the_o people_n shall_v seek_v the_o law_n at_o his_o mouth_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o 11.50_o notwithstanding_o mat._n 5.21_o &_o inde_fw-la joh._n 11.50_o sometime_o they_o have_v no_o priest_n to_o ask_v and_o f_o otherwhiles_o such_o as_o they_o have_v want_v knowledge_n and_o deliver_v that_o which_o be_v not_o law_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o this_o order_n shall_v be_v observe_v for_o the_o people_n instruction_n to_o preserve_v they_o in_o obedience_n if_o they_o do_v not_o fall_v from_o it_o so_o to_o tell_v the_o church_n be_v a_o rule_n prescribe_v to_o be_v use_v when_o the_o church_n enjoy_v her_o liberty_n and_o outward_a government_n but_o when_o the_o external_a state_n thereof_o and_o public_a intercourse_n of_o the_o faithful_a with_o the_o same_o shall_v cease_v when_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v in_o secret_a and_o all_o ecclesiastical_a order_n lie_v bury_v the_o altar_n forsake_v the_o church_n empty_a than_o it_o bind_v not_o because_o the_o mean_n fail_v neither_o do_v it_o imply_v any_o such_o perpetual_a visiblenesse_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v tie_v the_o church_n to_o for_o it_o be_v a_o law_n that_o man_n shall_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o worship_n there_o yet_o this_o imply_v not_o any_o perpetual_a glory_n to_o that_o city_n it_o be_v also_o a_o law_n that_o every_o male_a child_n shall_v be_v circumcise_v the_o eight_o day_n and_o yet_o upon_o necessity_n it_o be_v omit_v forty_o year_n and_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o sometime_o none_o can_v discern_v the_o church_n but_o such_o as_o very_o wise_o esteem_v of_o thing_n hereby_o grant_v that_o all_o man_n at_o all_o time_n can_v tell_v the_o church_n special_o if_o you_o add_v another_o point_n finem_fw-la point_n ema_n sa._n not_o in_o math._n 18.17_o fr._n victor_n relect_a 2._o parum_fw-la ante_fw-la finem_fw-la that_o by_o the_o church_n be_v mean_v the_o pastor_n only_o for_o they_o may_v be_v scatter_v or_o hide_v that_o we_o can_v have_v they_o ready_a to_o tell_v they_o every_o time_n a_o brother_n trespass_v last_o this_o commandment_n may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o the_o faithful_a among_o themselves_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o i_o say_v before_o of_o confession_n for_o 18.20_o for_o math._n 18.20_o where_o the_o true_a professor_n be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n either_o all_o or_o a_o part_n and_o they_o so_o many_o as_o live_v together_o see_v and_o know_v one_o another_o and_o can_v tell_v the_o church_n though_o the_o world_n hear_v not_o their_o voice_n §_o 21._o four_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o once_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a to_o wit_n when_o it_o first_o begin_v in_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o that_o company_n which_o by_o their_o preach_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n but_o there_o can_v no_o reason_n of_o difference_n be_v show_v why_o it_o shall_v be_v visible_a then_o and_o not_o now_o the_o answer_n 1_o he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o once_o the_o sun_n be_v visible_a but_o there_o can_v no_o reason_n be_v give_v why_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o always_o for_o as_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v why_o the_o sun_n though_o sometime_o clear_a yet_o sometime_o may_v be_v eclipse_v or_o depart_v out_o of_o our_o horizon_n so_o may_v there_o as_o evident_a difference_n be_v yield_v why_o the_o church_n afterward_o and_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o alike_o visible_a 4.2_o visible_a esa_n 2.3_o mic._n 4.2_o first_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v then_o to_o begin_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v meet_v the_o pastor_n and_o people_n thereof_o shall_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n next_o persecution_n be_v not_o then_o so_o grievous_a as_o afterward_o they_o be_v three_o the_o apostasy_n foretell_v by_o saint_n paul_n be_v not_o then_o begin_v but_o ensue_v long_o after_o which_o apostasy_n be_v the_o cloud_n that_o hide_v the_o church_n and_o yet_o if_o another_o conceit_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v true_a 61._o true_a alexand._n p_o 3._o qu._n ult._n nu_fw-la 5._o art_n 2._o panorm_a de_fw-fr elect_a &_o electi_fw-la po●c_fw-la significasti_fw-la durand_n ●at_a l._n 6._o c._n 72_o nu_fw-la 25._o turrecren_n sum_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 61._o that_o about_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n passion_n the_o true_a faith_n remain_v in_o none_o but_o the_o virgin_n marie_n the_o jesuite_n argument_n here_o will_v fall_v and_o our_o church_n at_o the_o worst_a have_v always_o be_v as_o visible_a as_o then_o it_o be_v for_o as_o for_o this_o present_a time_n and_o age_n we_o think_v it_o 606._o it_o hem_o fieri_fw-la potuit_fw-la ut_fw-la tot_fw-la germani_n angli_fw-la scoti_n bohemi_n vngari_n dani_n succi_n gotthi_n no●uegienses_fw-la prusli_n lithuam_fw-la livonij_fw-la eo_fw-la caecitatis_fw-la pe●uenerint_fw-la tho._n boz_n de_fw-fr sign_n eccl._n l._n 19_o c._n 1._o pag._n 606._o as_o visible_a all_o over_o the_o world_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v and_o if_o the_o jesuite_n think_v we_o hold_v otherwise_o he_o be_v deceive_v §_o 22._o five_o the_o only_a reason_n and_o ground_n by_o which_o heretic_n hold_v the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a be_v because_o they_o imagine_v the_o church_n to_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a or_o at_o least_o of_o the_o good_a but_o this_o be_v a_o false_a ground_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n militant_a consist_v of_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a as_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o parable_n wherein_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o floor_n wherein_o be_v mix_v wheat_n and_o chaff_n mat._n 3._o and_o to_o a_o net_n wherein_o be_v gather_v all_o sort_n of_o fish_n good_a and_o bad_a mat._n 13._o and_o to_o a_o marriage_n to_o which_o come_v good_a and_o bad_a matth._n 22._o and_o to_o ten_o virgin_n whereof_o five_o be_v foolish_a and_o exclude_v from_o the_o celestial_a marriage_n mat._n 25._o this_o also_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o 1._o cor._n 5._o command_v they_o to_o expel_v a_o incestuous_a person_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o consist_v of_o those_o only_o which_o be_v good_a the_o answer_n 1_o here_o the_o jesuite_n gross_o bewray_v either_o his_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n in_o that_o he_o say_v this_o be_v the_o only_a ground_n whereupon_o heretic_n hold_v the_o invisible_a church_n because_o it_o consist_v of_o the_o elect_a only_o for_o the_o question_n between_o we_o now_o be_v about_o the_o invisiblenesse_n not_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o of_o the_o militant_a as_o he_o himself_o acknowledge_v and_o let_v he_o if_o he_o can_v for_o the_o credit_n of_o his_o word_n show_v where_o any_o one_o of_o those_o who_o he_o call_v heretic_n make_v the_o mixture_n of_o good_a and_o bad_a in_o the_o church_n militant_a the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v sometime_o hide_a from_o the_o world_n for_o our_o proper_a ground_n be_v these_o 3.7_o these_o luc._n 18.8_o ●_o thes_n 2.3_o apoc_fw-la 9.1_o &_o 12.6_o &_o 13_o 3.7_o the_o prophecy_n and_o 21._o and_o 1._o reg._n 19.2_o reg._n 2.2_o chron_n 15.3_o &_o 28.20_o 24.2_o reg._n 21._o example_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o experience_n of_o time_n and_o event_n show_v it_o the_o blindness_n of_o the_o world_n the_o nature_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n all_o which_o convince_v it_o to_o be_v true_a that_o we_o say_v whereas_o the_o mixture_n of_o evil_a man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o hold_v we_o in_o the_o point_n that_o we_o confess_v hypocrite_n may_v also_o in_o secret_a profess_v with_o true_a believer_n and_o so_o be_v part_n of_o this_o invisible_a church_n let_v he_o therefore_o recall_v his_o oversight_n and_o forbear_v these_o forgery_n which_o tend_v to_o nothing_o but_o the_o steal_v away_o of_o their_o affection_n that_o know_v not_o how_o thing_n stand_v between_o us._n 2_o indeed_o another_o position_n of_o we_o that_o say_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v invisible_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n mention_v in_o the_o creed_n every_o member_n whereof_o be_v save_v be_v invisible_a and_o consist_v not_o of_o any_o external_a assembly_n that_o we_o see_v be_v ground_v on_o this_o that_o it_o contain_v none_o but_o the_o elect_a but_o not_o as_o the_o jesuit_n untrue_o say_v on_o this_o alone_a we_o have_v other_o ground_n beside_o first_o because_o the_o triumphant_a church_n be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n no_o earthly_a eye_n see_v or_o know_v next_o no_o man_n know_v god_n elect_v yet_o none_o but_o they_o be_v the_o very_a catholic_a church_n three_o all_o the_o person_n and_o
company_n in_o the_o world_n profess_v christ_n be_v never_o assemble_v into_o one_o place_n so_o that_o they_o may_v all_o of_o they_o be_v see_v four_o we_o use_v this_o reason_n also_o that_o in_o the_o visible_a assembly_n many_o bad_a be_v mingle_v with_o the_o good_a and_o therefore_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v allow_v another_o church_n whereto_o they_o proper_o belong_v which_o can_v be_v none_o but_o a_o invisible_a church_n but_o the_o jesuite_n avouch_v the_o mixture_n of_o good_a and_o bad_a in_o the_o militant_a church_n which_o we_o grant_v to_o prove_v the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v of_o all_o sort_n reason_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o the_o militant_a and_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o all_o one_o by_o reason_n whereof_o that_o may_v be_v in_o one_o which_o be_v not_o in_o another_o neither_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v conclude_v for_o the_o late_a out_o of_o those_o scripture_n which_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o former_a and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o this_o ground_n of_o we_o be_v so_o true_a which_o he_o call_v a_o false_a ground_n that_o many_o learned_a papist_n confess_v it_o with_o us._n many_o grant_n 9_o grant_n de_fw-fr eccl._n mild_a 3._o c._n 9_o say_v bellarmine_n that_o evil_a man_n be_v no_o true_a member_n neither_o simple_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o aequivocen_n only_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la &_o aequivocen_n in_o some_o respect_n and_o equivocal_o so_o say_v joannes_n de_fw-fr turcremata_fw-la prove_v it_o out_o of_o alexander_n hales_n hugh_n and_o saint_n thomas_n the_o same_o also_o be_v teach_v by_o petrus_n à_fw-fr soto_n canus_n and_o other_o now_o that_o which_o be_v so_o equivocal_o lexic_fw-la equivocal_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arist_n categ_n c._n 1._o phavorin_n lexic_fw-la be_v not_o so_o in_o deed_n but_o in_o name_n or_o likeness_n only_o as_o a_o paint_a man_n be_v call_v a_o man_n §_o 23._o last_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n prove_v the_o same_o origenes_n homilia_fw-la 30._o in_o mat_n ecclesia_fw-la say_v he_o plena_fw-la ●st_fw-la fulgore_fw-la ab_fw-la oriente_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la occidentem_fw-la cyprian_n lib._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la inquit_fw-la domini_fw-la luce_fw-fr perfusae_fw-la radios_fw-la suos_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la terrarum_fw-la spargit_fw-la chrysost_n hom_n 4._o in_o cap_n 6._o esaiae_n facilius_fw-la est_fw-la inquit_fw-la solemn_a extingui_fw-la quam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la obscurari_fw-la august_n lib._n 3._o contra_fw-la epist_n parmeniani_n cap._n 5._o nulla_fw-la inquit_fw-la est_fw-la securitas_fw-la unitatis_fw-la nisi_fw-la ex_fw-la promissi●_n dei_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la declaratis_fw-la quae_fw-la supra_fw-la montem_fw-la ut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la constituta_fw-la abscondi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la tract_n 1._o in_o epist_n joan._n nunquid_fw-la digito_fw-la ostendemus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la fratres_fw-la mei_fw-la nun_n aperta_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-fr tract_n 2._o quid_fw-la amplius_fw-la dicturus_fw-la sum_fw-la quàm_fw-la caeco●_n qui_fw-la tam_fw-la magnum_fw-la montem_fw-la non_fw-la vident_fw-la qui_fw-la contra_fw-la lucernam_fw-la in_o candelabro_fw-la positam_fw-la oculos_fw-la claudunt_fw-la by_o which_o place_n of_o the_o father_n do_v evident_o appear_v how_o that_o they_o do_v suppose_v as_o certain_a that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a &_o such_o as_o may_v be_v clear_o see_v and_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v the_o answer_n 1_o the_o judgement_n &_o teach_v of_o the_o father_n we_o acknowledge_v 1●_n acknowledge_v eph._n 4_o 1●_n must_v reverent_o be_v account_v of_o and_o follow_v as_o they_o follow_v the_o truth_n from_o which_o as_o other_o late_a pastor_n in_o god_n church_n so_o they_o have_v swerve_v sometime_o so_o manifest_o that_o canus_n a_o papist_n himself_o who_o judgement_n be_v commend_v by_o 239._o by_o qua_fw-la de_fw-la rectu●●tè_fw-la mihi_fw-la scrip●i●ie_fw-la videtur_fw-la canus_n lib._n ●_o de_fw-fr locis_fw-la theologicis_fw-la c_o 3_o tom_n 3_o cap._n 239._o gregory_n of_o valence_n 2._o valence_n loc._n theol●_n 7._o c._n 3._o concl_n 2._o write_v the_o canonical_a author_n indeed_o as_o be_v from_o above_o heavenly_a di●●●e_n do_v always_o hold_v a_o perpetual_a and_o stable_a constancy_n in_o their_o writing_n but_o other_o holy_a writer_n be_v inferior_a and_o humane_a fail_v sometime_o and_o now_o and_o then_o contrary_a to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n they_o bring_v forth_o a_o monster_n which_o be_v grant_v than_o their_o testimony_n prove_v not_o always_o but_o only_o show_v what_o they_o suppose_v and_o the_o common_a distinction_n of_o the_o papist_n here_o apply_v that_o 290._o that_o greg_n valent._n tom_n 3._o p._n 290._o it_o be_v infallible_o true_a which_o they_o deliver_v with_o one_o consent_n though_o it_o seem_v reasonable_a yet_o sometime_o it_o be_v but_o a_o stale_a to_o deceive_v for_o this_o consent_n can_v ever_o be_v know_v and_o they_o that_o keep_v such_o a_o stir_n with_o it_o b._n it_o quod_fw-la si_fw-la per_fw-la sententiam_fw-la doctorum_fw-la aliqua_fw-la fidei_fw-la controversia_fw-la non_fw-la satis_fw-la commode_v componi_fw-la posset_n eo_fw-la quod_fw-la illorum_fw-la consensu_fw-la ●on_n aperte_fw-la constaret_fw-la sva_fw-la tunc_fw-la const●●_n authoritas_fw-la upon_o ●fici_fw-la pag_n 293._o light_v b._n themselves_o place_v it_o at_o the_o length_n in_o the_o pope_n sole_a authority_n more_o shall_v be_v say_v of_o this_o matter_n 12._o matter_n §_o digress_v 47._o nu_fw-la 5._o ad_fw-la 12._o hereafter_o but_o here_o i_o touch_v it_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v the_o scripture_n only_o be_v judge_v 2_o but_o allow_v they_o what_o authority_n you_o will_v yet_o by_o the_o place_n allege_v it_o appear_v neither_o evident_o nor_o at_o all_o that_o they_o think_v any_o thing_n against_o our_o assertion_n but_o they_o speak_v either_o of_o the_o inward_a light_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o truth_n and_o obedience_n or_o of_o the_o outward_a estate_n as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o time_n or_o as_o the_o godly_a that_o live_v therein_o at_o all_o time_n see_v it_o as_o will_v appear_v by_o examine_v their_o particular_a word_n 3_o origen_n who_o yet_o i_o marvel_v that_o he_o will_v allege_v see_v they_o 3._o they_o baron_fw-fr an._n 232._o nu_fw-la 10._o tom_n 3._o count_v he_o a_o heretic_n and_o ibid._n and_o an._n 256._o nu_fw-la 40_o ibid._n reprove_v all_o that_o speak_v for_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v full_a of_o brightness_n from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n but_o this_o brightness_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o outward_a estate_n or_o appearance_n thereof_o but_o of_o the_o truth_n profess_v which_o we_o say_v may_v be_v do_v in_o secret_a as_o his_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o homily_n declare_v we_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o brightness_n of_o truth_n appear_v out_o of_o every_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o go_v out_o from_o the_o east_n that_o be_v from_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n it_o appear_v until_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o his_o passion_n wherein_o be_v his_o sunsetting_a and_o though_o this_o brightness_n be_v clear_a to_o the_o world_n also_o when_o origen_n write_v this_o yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v so_o a_o cloud_n of_o apostasy_n may_v after_o his_o time_n come_v and_o obscure_v it_o cyprian_n say_v the_o lord_n church_n be_v environ_v with_o his_o light_n reach_v his_o beam_n over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o word_n be_v in_o all_o point_n like_o origens_n receive_v the_o same_o answer_n for_o by_o this_o light_n he_o mean_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o next_o word_n this_o light_n be_v one_o which_o be_v spread_v every_o where_o and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n be_v not_o separate_v now_o this_o unity_n as_o all_o other_o inward_a grace_n and_o ornament_n of_o the_o church_n may_v with_o herself_o be_v spread_v all_o over_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o not_o visible_o to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o therein_o but_o by_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o her_o child_n scatter_v all_o over_o the_o world_n yet_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o church_n be_v open_o know_v in_o cyprian_n time_n though_o very_o poor_a and_o persecute_v but_o that_o prove_v not_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v so_o chrysostome_n say_v the_o sun_n shall_v soon_o be_v put_v out_o than_o the_o church_n obscure_v but_o by_o obscure_v he_o mean_v not_o the_o hide_v of_o it_o for_o a_o time_n out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o her_o enemy_n but_o the_o total_a extinguish_n and_o utter_a abolish_n of_o it_o which_o will_v easy_o appear_v if_o the_o greek_a word_n use_v for_o obscure_v be_v look_v now_o that_o may_v be_v hide_v for_o a_o time_n which_o be_v not_o extinguish_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o sun_n wherewith_o chrysostome_n compare_v the_o church_n again_o it_o be_v never_o obscure_v from_o those_o that_o live_v in_o it_o which_o profess_v the_o faith_n and_o yet_o the_o world_n may_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o as_o a_o blind_a man_n see_v not_o the_o
sun_n which_o yield_v light_n to_o other_o that_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v and_o that_o chrysostome_n think_v the_o church_n may_v sometime_o be_v invisible_a appear_v by_o the_o 49._o homily_n upon_o matthew_n where_o he_o say_v that_o since_o the_o time_n that_o heresy_n have_v invade_v the_o church_n it_o can_v no_o way_n be_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n only_o in_o this_o confusion_n it_o can_v no_o way_n else_o be_v know_v austin_n say_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n of_o unity_n but_o through_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n declare_v to_o his_o church_n which_o be_v set_v upon_o a_o hill_n can_v be_v hide_v my_o brethren_n shall_v i_o show_v you_o the_o church_n with_o my_o finger_n be_v it_o not_o manifest_a what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o but_o that_o they_o be_v blind_a which_o see_v not_o so_o great_a a_o hill_n which_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o a_o light_n set_v upon_o a_o candlestick_n in_o which_o word_n he_o speak_v against_o a_o conceit_n of_o the_o donatist_n who_o boast_v as_o the_o papist_n now_o do_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o but_o among_o they_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v blind_a that_o can_v not_o see_v it_o all_o over_o africa_n see_v it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n as_o plain_a as_o a_o mountain_n or_o a_o candle_n light_v which_o we_o grant_v and_o against_o the_o papist_n affirm_v of_o our_o own_o church_n at_o this_o day_n but_o his_o word_n imply_v not_o that_o this_o visible_a estate_n thereof_o so_o manifest_a in_o his_o time_n can_v no_o time_n be_v hide_v for_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n be_v not_o visible_a at_o every_o time_n as_o in_o a_o great_a mist_n or_o in_o the_o night_n neither_o be_v the_o sun_n always_o alike_o clear_a or_o in_o one_o horizon_n neither_o can_v 6.16_o can_v 2._o reg._n 6.16_o the_o aramite_n see_v the_o hill_n itself_o where_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n be_v and_o horse_n and_o chariot_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o he_o therefore_o augustine_n word_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o that_o particular_a time_n and_o not_o stretch_v to_o all_o time_n alike_o for_o he_o be_v blind_a which_o at_o noon_n day_n can_v see_v the_o sun_n light_n but_o the_o sun_n may_v set_v or_o be_v eclipse_v and_o then_o they_o be_v not_o all_o blind_a that_o see_v it_o not_o as_o himself_o speak_v plain_o in_o other_o place_n which_o be_v compare_v with_o these_o will_v give_v we_o their_o true_a meaning_n vincent_n meaning_n epist_n 48._o ad_fw-la vincent_n the_o church_n say_v he_o shall_v be_v obscure_v sometime_o and_o the_o cloud_n of_o offence_n may_v shadow_v it_o hesych_n it_o ep._n 80._o ad_fw-la hesych_n it_o shall_v not_o appear_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o unmeasurable_a rage_n of_o ungodly_a persecutor_n 10._o persecutor_n en●rrat_fw-la in_o psal_n 10._o it_o be_v like_o the_o moon_n and_o may_v be_v hide_v yea_o 4._o yea_o de_fw-fr baptism_n contra_fw-la donat._n lib._n 6._o c._n 4._o so_o obscure_v that_o the_o member_n thereof_o shall_v not_o know_v one_o another_o this_o he_o think_v may_v befall_v the_o church_n sometime_o whatsoever_o the_o light_n or_o greatness_n of_o it_o be_v when_o he_o write_v thus_o against_o the_o donatist_n in_o which_o distress_n she_o abide_v not_o always_o but_o find_v deliverance_n again_o when_o the_o time_n of_o her_o liberty_n be_v come_v as_o herself_o speak_v in_o the_o prophet_n 8._o prophet_n cap._n 7._o v._n 8._o michaiah_n rejoice_v not_o o_o my_o enemy_n that_o i_o be_o fall_v for_o i_o shall_v rise_v again_o and_o though_o i_o sit_v in_o darkness_n yet_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v my_o light_n §_o 24._o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v how_o we_o shall_v know_v which_o company_n in_o particular_a of_o those_o diverse_a sort_n of_o man_n that_o visible_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o which_o as_o have_v be_v say_v in_o all_o point_v we_o must_v learn_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o this_o question_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a mark_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n to_o say_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o teach_v the_o true_a faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o the_o question_n propound_v in_o this_o place_n concern_v the_o mark_n or_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o exceed_v profitable_a but_o even_o necessary_a for_o all_o those_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v satisfy_v whether_o we_o or_o the_o papist_n have_v the_o right_a church_n therefore_o we_o for_o our_o part_n answer_v it_o thus_o that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o proper_a and_o infallible_a mark_n whereby_o it_o must_v be_v judge_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n this_o the_o jesuite_n mislike_v and_o reason_v against_o in_o the_o seven_o next_o section_n but_o mark_v his_o drift_n d._n drift_n quis_fw-la erit_fw-la sinis_fw-la contendendi_fw-la nisi_fw-la author●tas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la a_o iundè_fw-la cognita_fw-la tam_fw-la quam_fw-la iudex_fw-la in_o doctrinae_fw-la quaestionibus_fw-la interponatur_fw-la greg._n valent._n tom_n 3._o p._n 149._o light_v d._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n from_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o her_o authority_n advance_v by_o other_o mean_n she_o may_v be_v receive_v as_o chief_a judge_n in_o all_o question_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n this_o be_v the_o reach_n that_o papist_n have_v in_o deny_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o blame_v they_o not_o if_o they_o venture_v hard_o for_o it_o the_o booty_n will_v recompense_v the_o charge_n if_o they_o can_v bring_v it_o in_o digression_n 18._o prove_v the_o true_a faith_n or_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o good_a mark_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n by_o 2_o the_o which_o while_o the_o jesuite_n deny_v i_o think_v he_o deal_v exceed_v rash_o for_o first_o he_o shall_v have_v consult_v with_o his_o fellow_n to_o see_v whether_o they_o also_o have_v be_v of_o his_o mind_n herein_o that_o so_o the_o unity_n so_o much_o commend_v in_o his_o discourse_n may_v appear_v the_o better_a which_o if_o he_o have_v do_v he_o shall_v have_v find_v some_o of_o his_o senior_n against_o he_o who_o think_v true_a doctrine_n to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o good_a note_n too_o the_o divine_n of_o collen_n nosce_fw-la collen_n enchir._n christianae_n institut_fw-la in_o synod_n col._n p_o 22._o §._o tertio_fw-la haec_fw-la nosce_fw-la in_o a_o provincial_a council_n determine_v that_o no_o man_n deny_v but_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v sincere_a evangelicall_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n in_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a note_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o of_o christ_n my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o that_o in_o saint_n paul_n if_o any_o man_n preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o 34._o and_o antididagm_n cap._n the_o cathol_a eccl._n p._n 34._o in_o another_o book_n they_o write_v the_o sacrament_n be_v certain_a mark_n and_o sign_n whereby_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v discern_v there_o be_v four_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n be_v certain_o know_v which_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o first_o be_v the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o general_a sense_n of_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a tradition_n the_o next_o be_v the_o right_a and_o uniform_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n villavincentius_fw-la praefat_fw-la villavincentius_fw-la de_fw-fr rat_n stud_n theol._n praefat_fw-la say_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o church_n as_o be_v a_o thing_n visible_a be_v special_o know_v and_o see_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o right_a dispensation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o open_a confession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o charity_n as_o it_o be_v by_o sign_n engrave_v and_o perpetual_o clean_v to_o it_o hosius_n 26._o hosius_n confess_v petrico_fw-it c._n 20._o p_o 26._o say_v there_o be_v which_o will_v have_v no_o more_o note_n of_o the_o church_n but_o two_o viz._n sincere_a doctrine_n and_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o they_o be_v note_n of_o the_o church_n indeed_o stapleton_n 22._o stapleton_n princip_n doct_v l._n 1._o c._n 22._o say_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o proper_a and_o a_o very_a clear_a note_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o it_o be_v do_v by_o lawful_a minister_n these_o man_n think_v and_o other_o more_z may_v be_v add_v to_o they_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o possible_a all_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n but_o none_o of_o they_o say_v as_o the_o jesuite_n
do_v it_o be_v no_o good_a mark_n they_o say_v the_o contrary_a it_o be_v a_o mark_n indeed_o a_o chief_a mark_n a_o proper_a and_o very_a clear_a note_n of_o the_o church_n a_o note_n engrave_v and_o perpetual_o cleave_v to_o it_o let_v he_o therefore_o be_v well_o advise_v how_o he_o cross_a his_o fellow_n lest_o his_o so_o do_v impair_v the_o credit_n of_o his_o church_n unity_n and_o make_v his_o reader_n suspect_v that_o he_o be_v labour_v to_o confute_v a_o matter_n which_o his_o own_o conscience_n tell_v he_o be_v most_o true_a 3_o for_o our_o saviour_n say_v in_o the_o 10.27_o the_o joh._n 10.27_o gospel_n my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n which_o teach_v we_o even_o by_o 2._o by_o bellarm._n do_v not_o eccl._n c._n 2._o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o wheresoever_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n sound_v there_o consequent_o be_v the_o elect_a his_o sheep_n that_o hear_v it_o and_o if_o his_o sheep_n be_v know_v to_o be_v there_o by_o this_o then_o be_v the_o church_n also_o know_v hereby_o for_o wheresoever_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n live_v there_o be_v the_o church_n in_o as_o much_o as_o these_o two_o be_v never_o divide_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o be_v note_n to_o teach_v we_o where_o the_o elect_v be_v be_v prove_v hereby_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n because_o wheresoever_o the_o elect_v live_v there_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o christ_n 18.20_o christ_n mat_n 18.20_o say_v where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o this_o teach_v we_o two_o thing_n by_o 2._o by_o bellarm._n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccl._n c._n 2._o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n first_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v a_o sign_n where_o christ_n be_v which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v it_o be_v a_o sign_n where_o christ_n church_n be_v for_o christ_n &_o his_o church_n be_v never_o asunder_o but_o 28.20_o but_o mat._n 28.20_o he_o abide_v with_o it_o for_o ever_o next_o that_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n if_o such_o teach_v it_o as_o be_v gather_v together_o by_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o succession_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o we_o desire_v for_o it_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o any_o other_o and_o it_o quite_o overthrow_v the_o jesuites_n conceit_n for_o he_o think_v his_o roman_a churchman_n to_o have_v lawful_a ordination_n and_o succession_n and_o yet_o deny_v the_o faith_n they_o preach_v to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o can_v reconcile_v himself_o with_o his_o fellow_n the_o same_o be_v further_a confirm_v by_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o 1.19_o of_o deut_n 4.6_o psal_n 147.19_o esa_n 2.2.3_o act._n 2.42_o joh._n 8.31_o rom._n 10.14_o 2._o pet_n 1.19_o scripture_n whither_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n 4_o and_o sure_o plain_a reason_n show_v it_o for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v a_o undoubted_a note_n of_o the_o church_n which_o make_v we_o know_v it_o when_o we_o seek_v it_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o false_a church_n of_o the_o heretic_n now_o this_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n do_v in_o that_o every_o church_n pretend_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v examine_v thereby_o and_o that_o allow_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n indeed_o which_o agree_v therewith_o according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n 6.26_o paul_n gal._n 6.26_o as_o many_o as_o walk_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n peace_n shall_v be_v upon_o they_o and_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n 16._o gospel_n mat._n 7_o 16._o say_v you_o shall_v know_v the_o false_a prophet_n by_o their_o fruit_n 1._o fruit_n jansen_n harm_n cap._n 43._o rhem._n annot_fw-mi in_o cum_fw-la loc_fw-la stapl._n princip_n doctr_n l._n 10._o c._n 1._o that_o be_v by_o their_o doctrine_n so_o that_o if_o the_o man_n which_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n be_v first_o to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o regard_n the_o apostle_n 2.19_o apostle_n ephes_n 2.19_o say_v of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o household_n of_o god_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o epiphanius_n speak_v of_o a_o heretic_n 4●_n heretic_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tom._n 1_o l._n 2._o haer_fw-mi 4●_n say_v this_o man_n be_v find_v altogether_o differ_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o it_o will_v appear_v to_o all_o they_o that_o read_v attentive_o if_o then_o he_o be_v dissent_v from_o they_o he_o be_v altogether_o a_o alien_n from_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o i_o think_v if_o we_o say_v no_o more_o to_o this_o point_n the_o very_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n may_v put_v it_o out_o of_o doubt_n who_o say_v express_o 859._o express_o reynol_n caluinoturc_n l._n 4._o c._n 9_o pag._n 859._o these_o two_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v so_o knit_v and_o enfold_v together_o that_o the_o one_o infer_v and_o conclude_v the_o other_o from_o the_o true_a church_n be_v conclude_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o from_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o true_a church_n be_v infer_v and_o 2._o and_o bellar._n do_v not_o eccl_n c._n 2._o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o church_n than_o the_o scripture_n be_v better_a know_v then_o the_o church_n now_o between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o church_n and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o best_a mark_n to_o know_v it_o by_o moreover_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n declare_v what_o be_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o jesuite_n himself_o speak_v and_o all_o papist_n be_v constrain_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v those_o mark_n which_o they_o assign_v and_o who_o then_o see_v not_o that_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o best_a note_n of_o all_o when_o it_o be_v first_o and_o best_a know_v this_o be_v his_o own_o reason_n who_o in_o his_o discourse_n follow_v hereby_o will_v prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v better_o know_v then_o the_o doctrine_n because_o it_o show_v the_o doctrine_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o our_o view_n again_o prooem_n again_o canis_fw-la catec_fw-la magn_n pag._n 131._o reynol_n caluinoturc_n pa._n 860._o staplet_n princip_n doctrine_n l._n 4._o prooem_n the_o learned_a among_o they_o maintain_v sundry_a of_o their_o note_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v true_a note_n because_o as_o they_o say_v the_o church_n be_v define_v by_o they_o and_o why_o then_o shall_v true_a doctrine_n and_o faith_n be_v debar_v which_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n &_o very_a difference_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o it_o differ_v principal_o from_o all_o false_a assembly_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v put_v in_o the_o definition_n thereof_o final_o 2.5_o final_o 2._o pet._n 1.19_o apoc._n 2.5_o the_o scripture_n call_v itself_o and_o the_o faith_n thereof_o a_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o church_n as_o in_o a_o candlestick_n or_o lantern_n which_o prove_v it_o sufficient_a to_o show_v we_o where_o the_o church_n be_v as_o a_o light_n in_o a_o dark_a night_n direct_v the_o sailor_n to_o his_o haven_n and_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n mark_n unity_n antiquity_n and_o universality_n agree_v to_o other_o assembly_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o by_o 3._o by_o bellar._n do_v not_o eccl_n c._n 3._o their_o own_o confession_n be_v no_o proof_n of_o evident_a truth_n this_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v find_v in_o none_o but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n whereunto_o it_o be_v proper_a every_o way_n even_o to_o all_o the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n and_o to_o it_o alone_o and_o so_o can_v deceive_v such_o as_o follow_v it_o 5_o in_o the_o last_o place_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o mark_v the_o judgement_n of_o two_o ancient_a father_n chrysostome_n and_o augustine_n and_o to_o compare_v the_o same_o with_o the_o jesuites_n conclusion_n and_o then_o free_o to_o say_v whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v all_o antiquity_n on_o her_o side_n or_o not_o in_o this_o time_n 49._o time_n op._n imperf_n hom_n 49._o say_v chrysostome_n since_o heresy_n have_v take_v hold_n of_o the_o church_n there_o can_v be_v no_o trial_n of_o true_a christianity_n nor_o any_o other_o refuge_n for_o christian_n desirous_a to_o know_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n former_o it_o may_v many_o way_n be_v show_v which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o gentilism_n but_o now_o they_o that_o will_v
jesuite_n bellar._n de_fw-fr n●●_n eccl_n c._n 2._o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o church_n which_o it_o be_v and_o the_o scripture_n be_v admit_v on_o both_o hand_n than_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o apparent_a and_o easy_a to_o know_v then_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o papist_n do_v but_o spend_v time_n and_o mock_v the_o world_n in_o object_v to_o we_o the_o authority_n and_o dignity_n of_o their_o church_n they_o may_v do_v it_o as_o they_o listen_v one_o to_o another_o but_o in_o their_o controversy_n with_o we_o they_o may_v not_o not_o only_o because_o we_o reject_v it_o but_o principal_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o their_o own_o verdict_n be_v easy_a and_o plain_o 4_o neither_o be_v the_o jesuite_n reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o any_o value_n for_o i_o grant_v that_o to_o the_o find_v out_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n we_o have_v need_n of_o learning_n judgement_n and_o illumination_n as_o the_o mean_n yea_o the_o doctrine_n hereof_o be_v so_o hard_a to_o natural_a man_n as_o we_o be_v all_o till_o god_n have_v regenerate_v we_o 32.8_o we_o joh._n 7.17_o &_o 8.31.43_o &_o 14_o 17._o 1_o cor._n 2.14_o 2._o cor._n 3.14_o mat._n 16.17_o job_n 32.8_o that_o it_o go_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v remember_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n the_o doctrine_n itself_o be_v a_o light_n shine_v through_o all_o these_o encumbrance_n these_o mean_n be_v not_o such_o but_o the_o simple_a may_v attain_v to_o a_o sufficient_a portion_n thereof_o and_o his_o ad_fw-la haec_fw-la quis_fw-la idoneus_fw-la with_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v deny_v as_o a_o idle_a conceit_n and_o 8._o and_o §._o 7._o &_o 8._o already_o confute_v and_o let_v the_o impediment_n be_v what_o they_o will_v yet_o shall_v the_o jesuite_n find_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o own_o church_n and_o let_v he_o if_o he_o can_v free_v his_o own_o note_n from_o they_o for_o be_v his_o catholic_a roman_a which_o so_o eager_o he_o put_v to_o his_o friend_n such_o a_o church_n as_o need_v neither_o learning_n nor_o judgement_n nor_o the_o light_n of_o heaven_n to_o discern_v it_o if_o it_o be_v i_o be_o content_a he_o enjoy_v it_o himself_o neither_o will_v i_o ever_o persuade_v my_o friend_n to_o communicate_v with_o that_o company_n which_o be_v so_o famous_a that_o the_o very_a wind_n will_v blow_v a_o man_n into_o it_o and_o yet_o 145._o yet_o staple_n relect_v controu_fw-fr 1._o q._n 3._o greg_n de_fw-fr valent_n come_v theol_fw-it tom_fw-mi 3._o pag._n 145._o some_o of_o the_o jesuite_n own_o side_n will_v say_v sometime_o that_o they_o have_v need_n both_o of_o wisdom_n and_o skill_n that_o shall_v always_o discern_v the_o church_n 5_o the_o text_n of_o esay_n speak_v of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o mean_v that_o it_o shall_v infallible_o guide_v the_o mean_a people_n that_o live_v therein_o to_o eternal_a life_n which_o it_o do_v by_o propound_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o be_v draw_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o path_n thereof_o and_o though_o the_o prophet_n call_v it_o a_o direct_a way_n yet_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o mean_v not_o that_o any_o can_v walk_v in_o it_o till_o he_o have_v find_v it_o or_o any_o can_v find_v it_o 35.5_o it_o esa_n 35.5_o till_o his_o eye_n be_v open_v 4.4_o open_v joh._n 12.40_o act._n 26.18_o 2._o cor._n 4.4_o which_o be_v do_v no_o way_n but_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o if_o he_o think_v the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n so_o easy_a because_o the_o holy_a prophet_n call_v it_o a_o direct_a way_n that_o fool_n may_v walk_v in_o it_o let_v he_o say_v unfeigned_o if_o his_o affection_n to_o the_o roman_a helena_n have_v not_o blind_v h_o his_o eye_n bucoliast_n eye_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theocr._n bucoliast_n as_o lover_n be_v blind_a and_o besot_v his_o conscience_n that_o he_o can_v see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v as_o easy_a see_v it_o be_v call_v 1.4_o call_v psal_n 19.8_o pro._n 1.4_o a_o sure_a law_n give_v wisdom_n to_o the_o simple_a and_o light_a to_o the_o eye_n sharpen_v the_o wit_n of_o the_o simple_a and_o give_v knowledge_n and_o discretion_n to_o child_n and_o austin_n say_v 8._o say_v enar._n in_o psa_fw-la 8._o the_o scripture_n be_v bow_v down_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o babe_n and_o suckling_n and_o chrysostome_n affirm_v mat._n affirm_v hom._n 1._o in_o mat._n they_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o understand_v that_o the_o capacity_n of_o every_o servant_n ploughman_n widow_n and_o boy_n may_v reach_v unto_o they_o laz._n they_o hom._n 3._o de_fw-fr laz._n yea_o the_o most_o simple_a that_o be_v of_o himself_o only_o by_o read_v may_v understand_v they_o in_o which_o say_n we_o see_v as_o much_o affirm_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o jesuite_n can_v say_v be_v affirm_v in_o the_o place_n of_o esay_n concern_v the_o church_n and_o yet_o possible_a he_o will_v turn_v he_o in_o a_o narrow_a room_n afore_o he_o will_v yield_v and_o keep_v possession_n still_o in_o his_o church-porch_n against_o all_o the_o pulpit_n in_o england_n that_o speak_v for_o the_o scripture_n §_o 27._o second_o i_o prove_v the_o same_o because_o when_o we_o seek_v for_o the_o true_a church_n we_o seek_v for_o it_o principal_o for_o this_o end_n that_o by_o it_o as_o a_o necessary_a and_o infallible_a mean_n we_o may_v hear_v and_o learn_v and_o perfect_o know_v the_o true_a faith_n in_o all_o point_n which_o otherwise_o be_v in_o itself_o hide_v obscure_a and_o unknown_a to_o we_o according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n animalis_fw-la homo_fw-la non_fw-la percipit_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la spiriritus_fw-la dei_fw-la 1._o cor._n 2._o for_o as_o no_o man_n by_o the_o only_a power_n of_o nature_n can_v attain_v this_o supernatural_a knowledge_n of_o divine_a mystery_n which_o we_o believe_v by_o our_o faith_n so_o neither_o do_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o do_v as_o the_o principal_a cause_n infuse_v this_o gift_n of_o faith_n into_o our_o soul_n ordinary_o instruct_v any_o man_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o true_a faith_n immediate_o by_o himself_o alone_o but_o require_v as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n the_o preach_v and_o expound_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o true_a church_n according_a as_o s._n paul_n say_v rom._n 10._o quomodo_n credent_a ei_fw-la quem_fw-la non_fw-la audierunt_fw-la quomodo_fw-la audient_fw-la sine_fw-la praedicante_fw-la quomodo_fw-la vero_fw-la praedicabunt_fw-la nisi_fw-la mittantur_fw-la therefore_o the_o true_a church_n be_v rather_o a_o mark_n whereby_o we_o must_v know_v the_o true_a faith_n then_o contrary_a the_o true_a faith_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n the_o answer_n 1_o this_o be_v the_o second_o argument_n and_o be_v conclude_v in_o this_o syllogism_n that_o be_v no_o mark_n or_o mean_n to_o know_v the_o church_n by_o which_o itself_o be_v unknown_a to_o we_o till_o the_o church_n teach_v it_o and_o be_v learn_v by_o the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n but_o such_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n that_o we_o can_v know_v it_o till_o the_o church_n teach_v it_o we_o and_o itself_o be_v learn_v by_o the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n for_o god_n instruct_v no_o man_n immediate_o but_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o church_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v rom._n 10._o therefore_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a mark_n to_o find_v the_o church_n by_o for_o answer_v to_o this_o argument_n it_o will_v easy_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n whereby_o we_o learn_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o no_o man_n of_o himself_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o but_o as_o the_o church_n teach_v he_o this_o i_o say_v be_v grant_v so_o it_o be_v well_o understand_v for_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o principal_a schoolmaster_n from_o who_o all_o truth_n come_v and_o which_o open_v the_o heart_n to_o believe_v and_o the_o church_n be_v it_o which_o by_o her_o ministry_n hold_v this_o truth_n before_o we_o and_o therefore_o except_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n the_o preach_v thereof_o be_v require_v as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n as_o the_o text_n of_o saint_n paul_n speak_v 2_o but_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v rather_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o faith_n than_o the_o faith_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n for_o these_o two_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v like_o relative_n inseparable_o unite_v together_o by_o a_o
not_o to_o the_o clergy_n but_o to_o the_o people_n and_o the_o reason_n add_v why_o they_o shall_v try_v the_o spirit_n make_v it_o plain_a who_o the_o party_n be_v that_o shall_v try_v they_o for_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o they_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v seduce_v by_o false_a prophet_n and_o such_o be_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v examine_v they_o as_o christ_n say_v 7.15_o say_v math._n 7.15_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n by_o their_o fruit_n that_o be_v by_o their_o doctrine_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o and_o yet_o they_o can_v be_v know_v by_o their_o doctrine_n unless_o it_o be_v first_o examine_v and_o saint_n basil_n bas_n basil_n eth._n definit_a 72._o pag._n 432._o graec._n bas_n say_v it_o behove_v the_o hearer_n which_o be_v learn_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o examine_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v by_o their_o teacher_n and_o receive_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v consonant_a with_o the_o scripture_n to_o refuse_v the_o contrary_n 2_o and_o whereas_o the_o jesuite_n avouch_v his_o conceit_n by_o a_o text_n of_o ephes_n 4.11_o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v leave_v to_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n that_o henceforth_o we_o be_v no_o more_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n say_v not_o that_o our_o pastor_n be_v give_v we_o that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v no_o more_o try_v the_o spirit_n but_o for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n all_o which_o duty_n of_o they_o be_v much_o further_v when_o the_o people_n under_o they_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o by_o examine_v their_o teach_n find_v they_o to_o be_v doctor_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o if_o saint_n paul_n have_v mislike_v this_o than_o the_o man_n of_o beroea_n have_v not_o be_v 17.11_o be_v act._n 17.11_o commend_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o examine_v his_o doctrine_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v 5.14_o have_v heb._n 5.14_o warn_v the_o hebrew_n that_o through_o long_a custom_n they_o shall_v have_v their_o wit_n exercise_v to_o discern_v both_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o to_o reply_v that_o they_o discern_v it_o because_o the_o church_n tell_v they_o what_o it_o be_v be_v too_o gross_a for_o they_o can_v tell_v whether_o the_o church_n say_v true_a or_o no_o till_o they_o have_v examine_v what_o it_o say_v 3_o in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o spirit_n which_o must_v be_v try_v be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v of_o god_n but_o only_o such_o spirit_n of_o which_o we_o may_v doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o then_o the_o which_o he_o can_v have_v speak_v nothing_o more_o unaduised_o because_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o try_v such_o spirit_n as_o be_v suspicious_a or_o false_a then_o be_v it_o also_o lawful_a to_o prove_v the_o true_a for_o two_o contrary_a spirit_n be_v relative_n so_o that_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o one_o to_o be_v false_a but_o we_o must_v needs_o withal_o prove_v the_o other_o to_o be_v true_a again_o when_o we_o doubt_v whether_o the_o spirit_n be_v of_o god_n than_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a and_o if_o the_o false_a spirit_n be_v not_o certain_o false_a than_o neither_o be_v the_o true_a spirit_n certain_o true_a in_o my_o understanding_n till_o i_o have_v try_v it_o moreover_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o true_a in_o itself_o but_o it_o may_v be_v doubtful_a to_o we_o till_o we_o have_v try_v it_o and_o therefore_o the_o pure_a spirit_n be_v not_o exempt_a from_o examination_n special_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v no_o injury_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o love_v to_o be_v sift_v if_o you_o prove_v it_o by_o his_o word_n 18.37_o word_n joh._n 18.37_o that_o be_v bear_v to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o more_o you_o try_v it_o the_o clear_a it_o be_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v grievance_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o 5.21_o who_o 1._o thess_n 5.21_o call_v upon_o we_o to_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o bid_v we_o have_v our_o wit_n exercise_v to_o discern_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a 4_o and_o his_o conclusion_n that_o when_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o spirit_n be_v of_o god_n than_o we_o must_v no_o long_o doubtful_o examine_v it_o but_o obedient_o accept_v it_o say_v very_o well_o for_o 3.7_o for_o 2._o tim._n 3.7_o the_o apostle_n rebuke_v such_o as_o be_v always_o learning_n and_o never_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o he_o forget_v that_o so_o it_o never_o be_v till_o we_o have_v try_v it_o and_o therefore_o we_o may_v first_o examine_v it_o that_o afterward_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a and_o obedient_a and_o though_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v of_o god_n yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o we_o must_v seek_v this_o church_n by_o other_o mark_n and_o not_o by_o her_o teach_n for_o those_o other_o mark_n which_o the_o jesuite_n mean_v be_v of_o god_n too_o as_o well_o as_o the_o teach_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o will_v allow_v they_o to_o be_v examine_v and_o first_o to_o examine_v and_o try_v and_o then_o obedient_o to_o believe_v be_v not_o contrary_a but_o subordinate_a and_o the_o one_o the_o way_n to_o the_o other_o and_o christ_n be_v of_o god_n yet_o 5.39_o yet_o joh_n 5.39_o he_o bid_v man_n search_v the_o scripture_n for_o his_o trial_n and_o all_o we_o be_v natural_o the_o heir_n of_o unbelief_n can_v have_v this_o certainty_n in_o ourselves_o till_o the_o discourse_n of_o god_n word_n have_v create_v it_o in_o us._n and_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o lead_v we_o yet_o the_o experience_n which_o we_o have_v have_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deal_n be_v sufficient_a to_o warn_v we_o that_o we_o never_o give_v over_o saint_n johns_n lesson_n believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n digression_n 20._o concern_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o determine_a matter_n of_o faith_n 5_o for_o the_o papist_n 4●2_n papist_n bone_fw-la deu●_n quae_fw-la gentium_fw-la varietas_fw-la qui_fw-la delectus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la qui_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o rerum_fw-la publicarum_fw-la splendour_n quae_fw-la medulla_n theologorum_fw-la quae_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la quae_fw-la lacrymae_fw-la quae_fw-la ici●ni●_n qui_fw-la flores_fw-la academici_fw-la quae_fw-la linguae_fw-la quan●a_fw-la subtilitas_fw-la quantus_fw-la labour_n quam_fw-la insinita_fw-la lectio_fw-la quantae_fw-la virtutan_n &_o studiorum_fw-la divit●_n t_z aug_fw-mi ●stum_fw-la ill●d_fw-la sacra●ium_fw-la impleverunt●_n possevin_n biblioth_o pag_n 4●2_n commend_v their_o trent_n council_n to_o the_o sky_n persuade_v themselves_o this_o very_a church_n be_v there_o who_o bare_a authority_n shall_v lead_v we_o and_o yet_o mark_v what_o course_n it_o take_v in_o the_o trial_n of_o religion_n for_o first_o none_o be_v admit_v to_o have_v any_o voice_n there_o but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v fast_o to_o the_o papacy_n and_o not_o all_o such_o neither_o if_o they_o be_v not_o pliable_a enough_o in_o every_o matter_n to_o the_o pope_n mind_n for_o some_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o council_n and_o send_v away_o because_o they_o begin_v to_o speak_v something_o free_o and_o to_o make_v sure_a work_n there_o be_v more_o bishop_n of_o italy_n then_o of_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o who_o may_v over-rule_v the_o rest_n if_o need_v require_v of_o which_o matter_n 1._o matter_n claud._n espencae_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la tit._n c._n 1._o a_o popish_a bishop_n confess_v this_o be_v that_o helena_n which_o of_o late_o rule_v all_o at_o trident_n beside_o quoniam_fw-la beside_o innocen_n gen_n tillet_n examen_fw-la council_n triden_n pag._n 32._o nota_fw-la quod_fw-la holy_a multi_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la sine_fw-la administratione_fw-la episcopatuum_fw-la ut_fw-la sunt_fw-la isti_fw-la qui_fw-la vulgariter_fw-la appellantur_fw-la nullatenenses_n panor_n de_fw-fr offic_n ordin_fw-fr c._n quoniam_fw-la there_o be_v some_o that_o have_v the_o title_n of_o archbishop_n as_o vpsalensis_fw-la &_o armachanus_fw-la which_o yet_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o diocese_n but_o be_v create_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o number_n 251._o number_n id_fw-la pag._n 251._o and_o when_o yet_o upon_o a_o time_n the_o pope_n want_v voice_n to_o sway_v the_o matter_n he_o send_v a_o fresh_a supply_n of_o forty_o bishop_n new_o make_v as_o every_o base_a town_n in_o italy_n have_v his_o bishop_n and_o when_o the_o protestant_a divine_n require_v audience_n they_o can_v not_o be_v admit_v upon_o any_o equal_a term_n but_o etc._n but_o illyr_n protest_v contra_fw-la council_n try_v fabric_n recus_fw-la
the_o particular_a church_n set_v down_o and_o name_v the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n the_o which_o confession_n if_o the_o jesuite_n can_v show_v to_o jar_n as_o he_o say_v in_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n i_o be_o content_a you_o believe_v he_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o if_o he_o can_v show_v the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o papistry_n be_v first_o abolish_v have_v alter_v one_o article_n of_o the_o present_a faith_n now_o profess_v 2_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o there_o be_v jar_n among_o we_o but_o this_o be_v that_o we_o say_v and_o for_o trial_n thereof_o we_o challenge_v all_o the_o seminary_n this_o day_n in_o england_n from_o who_o the_o worst_a of_o our_o fall_n out_o be_v not_o hide_v that_o these_o jar_n be_v not_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o yet_o any_o contrariety_n between_o church_n and_o church_n but_o only_o they_o be_v quarrel_n and_o dissension_n between_o some_o particular_a man_n and_o i_o think_v the_o jesuite_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o absurd_a as_o to_o hold_v the_o church_n itself_o guilty_a of_o every_o fault_n commit_v by_o any_o private_a man_n therein_o no_o more_o than_o a_o civil_a state_n order_v by_o good_a law_n and_o wholesome_a government_n can_v be_v discredit_v by_o some_o suit_n and_o quarrel_n that_o now_o and_o then_o fall_v out_o between_o the_o subject_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v false_a he_o say_v that_o scarce_o three_o learned_a man_n among_o we_o be_v in_o all_o point_n of_o one_o opinion_n for_o that_o breach_n which_o be_v be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o these_o word_n imply_v but_o only_o touch_v some_o particular_a man_n in_o matter_n not_o concern_v faith_n the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n continue_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o uphold_v her_o government_n and_o for_o further_a proof_n hereof_o our_o enemy_n have_v take_v infinite_a pain_n to_o collect_v and_o blaze_v abroad_o these_o our_o suppose_a dissension_n but_o how_o have_v they_o speed_v in_o the_o journey_n what_o have_v they_o perform_v the_o mountain_n travel_v and_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o mouse_n for_o one_o part_n of_o these_o dissension_n be_v false_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n through_o the_o ignorance_n and_o fury_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o drunken_a man_n in_o the_o pang_n of_o their_o giddiness_n speak_v of_o thing_n not_o as_o they_o be_v indeed_o but_o as_o the_o impression_n be_v in_o their_o idle_a fancy_n another_o part_n be_v not_o the_o jar_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o few_o therein_o whereof_o the_o church_n be_v not_o guilty_a the_o rest_n be_v not_o dissension_n in_o thing_n of_o faith_n but_o strife_n about_o ceremony_n kindle_v and_o nourish_v special_o by_o the_o cunning_a of_o secret_n papist_n lurk_v as_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o canaanite_n among_o we_o wherein_o if_o any_o among_o we_o have_v exceed_v yet_o 16.51_o yet_o ezek._n 16.51_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n justifi_v we_o again_o where_o neither_o three_o learned_a man_n nor_o three_o pope_n can_v be_v give_v of_o one_o mind_n in_o all_o point_n but_o as_o platina_n vi_fw-la platina_n in_o steph._n vi_fw-la write_v this_o have_v be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o manner_n that_o the_o late_a pope_n have_v either_o infringe_v or_o whole_o take_v away_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o former_a and_o papist_n annot._n papist_n d._n 40._o si_fw-mi pap._n edit_fw-la gregorian_n in_o annot._n desire_v to_o fetch_v religion_n rather_o from_o the_o pope_n mouth_n then_o from_o holy_a writ_n can_v but_o change_v as_o they_o have_v change_v 3_o therefore_o the_o discord_n among_o we_o be_v of_o no_o high_a degree_n we_o say_v as_o prudentius_n a_o christian_a poet_n say_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o time_n psychom_n time_n concordia_fw-la laesa_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la defensa_fw-la fide_fw-la quin_fw-la &_o concordia_fw-la sospe_n germanam_fw-la comitata_fw-la fidem_fw-la sva_fw-la vulnera_fw-la ridet_fw-la psychom_n it_o have_v receive_v some_o hurt_n but_o be_v defend_v by_o faith_n her_o sister_n in_o who_o company_n be_v safe_o come_v home_o she_o laugh_v at_o her_o wound_n and_o though_o we_o excuse_v not_o the_o opposition_n of_o any_o who_o as_o k_o the_o twin_n of_o rebecca_n shake_v each_o other_o in_o their_o mother_n womb_n whereby_o she_o be_v make_v afraid_a and_o her_o burden_n become_v heavy_a and_o painefull_a to_o she_o yet_o let_v not_o our_o enemy_n flatter_v themselves_o in_o this_o 25.22_o this_o gen._n 25.22_o for_o rebecca_n the_o church_n among_o we_o shall_v be_v safe_a &_o god_n shall_v give_v she_o isaac_n the_o son_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o make_v she_o a_o fruitful_a mother_n after_o all_o her_o sorrow_n who_o child_n though_o in_o some_o thing_n they_o vary_v yea_o reproach_n one_o another_o yet_o so_o do_v cyril_n and_o theodoret_n chrysostome_n and_o theophilus_n jerome_n and_o ruffin_n and_o there_o be_v no_o impossibility_n why_o in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o their_o passion_n they_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v both_o for_o two_o brother_n be_v in_o choler_n may_v one_o renounce_v the_o other_o yet_o still_o they_o remain_v brother_n for_o all_o that_o and_o their_o angry_a word_n proceed_v not_o of_o judgement_n but_o of_o choler_n theb._n choler_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aeschyl_n sept._n ad_fw-la theb._n can_v make_v void_v the_o band_n of_o nature_n digression_n 21._o show_v that_o god_n true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v now_o and_o then_o be_v trouble_v with_o contention_n as_o great_a as_o be_v now_o among_o us._n 4_o and_o because_o our_o enemy_n may_v hope_v by_o urge_v these_o contention_n such_o as_o they_o be_v to_o discredit_v our_o profession_n they_o must_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o unity_n of_o god_n church_n be_v never_o so_o perfect_a or_o entire_a but_o sometime_o it_o have_v be_v blemish_v with_o dissension_n yea_o miserable_o rend_v in_o sunder_o with_o the_o inconsiderate_a strife_n of_o her_o own_o child_n saint_n paul_n 16.17_o paul_n rom._n 16.17_o testify_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o there_o be_v therein_o which_o cause_v division_n and_o offence_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o corinth_n he_o 3.3_o he_o 1._o cor._n 3.3_o say_v there_o be_v among_o they_o envy_v strife_n and_o contention_n some_o hold_v of_o paul_n some_o of_o apollo_n some_o of_o cephas_n and_o he_o 11.19_o he_o 1._o cor._n 11.19_o write_v to_o they_o that_o there_o must_v be_v heresy_n among_o they_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o such_o as_o be_v faithful_a so_o 15.39_o so_o act._n 15.39_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n yea_o 2.11_o yea_o gal._n 2.11_o paul_n and_o peter_n have_v their_o jar_n so_o polycrates_n and_o victor_n cyprian_n and_o cornelius_n cyril_n and_o theodoret_n chrysostome_n theophilus_n and_o epiphanius_n hierome_n and_o ruffin_n paulinus_n and_o meletius_n leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nazianzen_n and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n all_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v at_o extreme_a contention_n one_o with_o another_o inde_fw-la another_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5_o c._n 23._o &_o inde_fw-la niceph._n l._n 4_o c._n 37._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o strife_n between_o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o easter_n be_v such_o that_o they_o excommunicate_v each_o other_o dionysio_n other_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 7_o c._n 3._o &_o inde_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 74._o ad_fw-la pomp._n sabrat_n council_n carth._n apud_fw-la cypt._n apud_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 75_o hieron_n de_fw-fr script_n in_o dionysio_n the_o question_n of_o rebaptisation_n breed_v the_o like_a broil_n between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o western_a bishop_n on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o cyprian_a dionysius_n and_o firmilianus_n three_o metropolitan_n with_o the_o most_o bishop_n in_o africa_n egypt_n cappadocia_n galatia_n and_o cilicia_n on_o the_o other_o part_n there_o be_v no_o church_n or_o catholic_a bishop_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o entangle_v in_o this_o opposition_n but_o the_o broil_n stir_v up_o by_o theophilus_n against_o chrysostome_n be_v more_o than_o tragical_a and_o rend_v in_o sunder_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v they_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o thus_o contend_v in_o this_o variance_n theophilus_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o epiphanius_n the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n be_v chief_a against_o chrysostome_n and_o with_o they_o join_v the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n as_o they_o fancy_v the_o event_n be_v this_o 21._o this_o socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 21._o chrysostome_n lose_v both_o his_o bishopric_n and_o life_n in_o banishment_n 13_o banishment_n ni●eph_n l._n 13._o c._n 13_o epiphanius_n and_o he_o most_o grievous_o curse_v one_o another_o 21._o another_o socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 17._o &_o niceph._n l._n 13._o cap._n 17._o &_o 21._o many_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o take_n of_o part_n 262._o part_n sozo_n l._n
8._o c._n 22_o zosim_n l._n 5._o socr_n l._n 6._o c._n 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 262._o the_o cathedral_n church_n at_o constantinople_n with_o the_o senate_n house_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n &_o burn_v to_o the_o ground_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o revenge_n the_o people_n be_v rob_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o the_o pastor_n themselves_o persecute_v each_o other_o and_o pursue_v their_o people_n most_o unmerciful_o caesar_n baronius_n begin_v to_o entreat_v of_o this_o contention_n 51._o contention_n annal_n tom_n 5_o an._n 400._o nu_fw-la 51._o have_v these_o word_n a_o shameful_a contention_n in_o the_o church_n the_o lamentable_a narration_n whereof_o i_o now_o take_v in_o hand_n wherein_o shall_v be_v describe_v the_o bicker_n and_o curse_a persecution_n not_o of_o gentile_a against_o christian_n or_o heretic_n against_o catholic_n or_o wicked_a man_n against_o good_a and_o just_a man_n but_o which_o be_v monstrous_a and_o prodigious_a of_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n one_o against_o another_o the_o which_o word_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o this_o contention_n be_v among_o god_n own_o child_n in_o the_o true_a church_n the_o like_a be_v write_v of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 17._o nice_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sozo_n l._n 1_o c._n 17._o accuse_v one_o another_o to_o the_o emperor_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v assemble_v of_o who_o jar_n that_o famous_a speech_n of_o constantine_n make_v unto_o they_o upon_o that_o occasion_n give_v witness_v wherein_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d thing_n soz._n ibid._n niceph_n l_o 8._o c._n 16._o idem_fw-la in_o conc._n ●y_a ●apud_fw-la niceph_n l_o 8._o c._n 50._o euseb_n vit_fw-mi constant_a l._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o think_v this_o worse_a than_o all_o the_o evil_n to_o be_v utter_v that_o he_o see_v the_o church_n of_o god_n dissent_v by_o contention_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n yea_o sozomen_n 16._o sozomen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lib._n 1._o c._n 16._o say_v the_o contrariety_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o learned_a at_o that_o time_n be_v so_o scandalous_a that_o it_o turn_v many_o from_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n so_o likewise_o in_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n for_o the_o depose_n of_o nazianzen_n he_o thus_o admonish_v the_o bishop_n basil_n bishop_n vita_fw-la nazian_n praefixa_fw-la operibus_fw-la eius_fw-la graecè_fw-la editis_fw-la basil_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n o_o my_o fellow_n pastor_n of_o the_o sacred_a flock_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o befit_v you_o if_o while_o you_o teach_v other_o peace_n yourselves_o fall_v to_o war_n and_o how_o shall_v you_o persuade_v other_o to_o unity_n yourselves_o be_v at_o variance_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n flavianus_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v depose_v 47._o depose_v liberat._n breu_o c._n 12._o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 47._o &_o pitiful_o murder_v 47._o murder_v euagr._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 10_o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 47._o with_o he_o be_v also_o depose_v eusebius_n dorilaeus_n ibas_n theodoret_n domnus_n daniel_n aquilinus_n and_o irenaeus_n all_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o faction_n of_o dioscorus_n alone_o 105._o alone_o baro._n an._n 449_o nu_fw-la 97._o 98._o 105._o but_o by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n themselves_o all_o which_o say_v baronius_n consent_v both_o to_o the_o restore_n of_o eutyches_n and_o depose_n of_o flavianus_n and_o the_o rest_n there_o be_v in_o this_o contentious_a council_n above_o 132._o bishop_n whereof_o the_o four_o patriarch_n beside_o the_o pope_n deputy_n be_v part_n yea_o it_o be_v a_o ecumenical_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v of_o catholic_a bishop_n &_o yet_o through_o the_o conveyance_n of_o cunning_a adversary_n they_o be_v set_v one_o against_o another_o for_o the_o godly_a man_n of_o those_o time_n have_v secret_a enemy_n grievous_a wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n who_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o abuse_v their_o simplicity_n and_o set_v they_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o for_o so_o do_v man_n use_v 4._o use_v sozo_n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o say_v a_o old_a history_n speak_v of_o this_o matter_n as_o long_o as_o stranger_n wrong_v they_o to_o hold_v together_o but_o when_o they_o be_v deliver_v fr●m_o outward_a trouble_n than_o they_o fall_v out_o among_o themselves_o thus_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o arrian_n kindle_v those_o contention_n that_o among_o the_o catholic_n break_v out_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o athanasius_n and_o by_o strange_a device_n nourish_v they_o whereby_o they_o draw_v godly_a bishop_n into_o their_o faction_n against_o the_o truth_n as_o 68_o as_o haer_fw-mi 68_o epiphanius_n note_v of_o the_o meletian_o demonstrabant_fw-la meletian_o primus_fw-la ferentes_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o pielate_fw-la tum_fw-la in_o vita_fw-la meletiani_n qui_fw-la summam_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la veritatis_fw-la demonstrabant_fw-la godly_a man_n that_o be_v mingle_v with_o the_o arrian_n though_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o free_a from_o some_o contagion_n which_o they_o gather_v in_o that_o society_n and_o one_o part_n hereof_o be_v arrian_n be_v atha_n orat_fw-la 1._o contr_n arrian_n their_o stand_n with_o other_o against_o athanasius_n this_o be_v it_o that_o breed_v the_o trouble_n among_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o counsel_n of_o seleucia_n syrmium_fw-la antioch_n tirus_fw-la lampsacum_fw-la ariminum_n and_o many_o other_o wherein_o evermore_o something_o be_v practise_v even_o by_o bishop_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n against_o their_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o the_o faith_n itself_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n be_v famous_a for_o this_o wherein_o there_o be_v above_o 400._o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n all_o catholic_a synod_n catholic_a athan._n de_fw-fr synod_n but_o 50._o or_o thereabouts_o that_o be_v arrian_n and_o yet_o they_o relent_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n towards_o arrianisme_n and_o give_v occasion_n of_o infinite_a broil_n in_o the_o church_n afterward_o by_o their_o inconstancy_n 5_o and_o long_o before_o this_o saint_n cyprian_a lament_a church-contention_n and_o 4._o and_o l._n 4._o ep._n 4._o think_v god_n send_v the_o persecution_n of_o his_o time_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n these_o evil_n say_v he_o have_v not_o come_v upon_o the_o brethren_n if_o they_o have_v be_v link_v together_o in_o brotherly_a concord_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o persecution_n of_o julian_n be_v over_o the_o story_n 40._o story_n sozo_n l._n 6._o c_o 4._o niceph._n l._n 10._o c._n 40._o tell_v how_o the_o church-governor_n again_o move_v question_n and_o disputation_n about_o the_o dogmatic_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o eusebius_n beginning_n to_o entreat_v of_o the_o bloody_a persecution_n which_o the_o church_n suffer_v under_o diocletian_n say_v the_o contention_n of_o the_o learned_a therein_o be_v the_o cause_n 1_o cause_n lib._n 8._o hist_o c._n 1_o these_o be_v his_o word_n they_o also_o say_v he_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v our_o pastor_n cast_v off_o the_o rule_n of_o piety_n inflame_v themselves_o with_o mutual_a contention_n each_o against_o other_o they_o increase_v nothing_o but_o strife_n threat_n envy_n and_o quarrel_n every_o man_n with_o all_o tyranny_n pursue_v his_o ambition_n neither_o do_v the_o persecution_n ensue_v stay_v this_o dissension_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o peace_n come_v to_o the_o church_n they_o fall_v to_o it_o again_o 8._o again_o euseb_n vit_fw-mi constan_n l._n 3._o gela._n cyzecen_n act_n conc_fw-fr nic._n l._n 2_o c._n 7._o 8._o that_o the_o good_a emperor_n which_o bring_v this_o peace_n have_v much_o ado_n with_o all_o his_o authority_n to_o appease_v they_o whereupon_o basil_n the_o great_a make_v this_o sorrowful_a complaint_n in_o other_o art_n and_o science_n 235._o science_n aschet_fw-mi proae_fw-la de_fw-fr iudic_n dei_fw-la p._n ●89_n graec._n the_o like_a complaint_n make_v by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n of_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o his_o time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d council_n ephes_n pag._n 235._o say_v he_o i_o have_v see_v much_o concord_n among_o the_o professor_n thereof_o only_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n i_o have_v observe_v so_o much_o division_n and_o so_o exceed_o great_a dissension_n of_o many_o both_o among_o themselves_o and_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o which_o be_v most_o horrible_a the_o bishop_n themselves_o have_v stand_v in_o such_o difference_n among_o themselves_o both_o of_o mind_n and_o opinion_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n have_v use_v such_o contrariety_n that_o thereby_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v be_v unmerciful_o draw_v in_o sunder_o and_o his_o flock_n trouble_v without_o all_o care_n and_o pity_n a_o heavy_a complaint_n and_o such_o as_o charge_v the_o church_n with_o a_o foul_a blemish_n even_o as_o foul_a every_o way_n as_o that_o wherewith_o the_o jesuite_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o enemy_n this_o day_n upbraid_v the_o church_n
appeareth_z by_o 7._o by_o ep._n 109._o lib._n 7._o the_o epistle_n of_o gregory_n to_o serenus_n and_o 13._o and_o de_fw-fr invent_v l._n 6_o c._n 13._o polydore_n a_o papist_n confess_v all_o the_o father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n afterward_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n bring_v in_o the_o worship_n also_o 7._o also_o act._n 7._o decree_a notwithstanding_o that_o no_o image_n shall_v be_v adore_v with_o latria_n divine_a honour_n but_o at_o the_o last_o 4._o last_o part._n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3_o 4._o thomas_n of_o aquin_n 25._o aquin_n sesse_n 25._o and_o the_o trent_n council_n 4._o council_n fr._n suar_fw-la tum._fw-la 1_o disp_n 54_o sect_n 4._o vazqu_n de_fw-fr adorat_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o expound_v so_o by_o the_o jesuit_n teach_v that_o divine_a honour_n also_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o here_o we_o see_v three_o alteration_n in_o one_o point_n the_o bring_n of_o image_n in_o the_o reverence_v they_o with_o civil_a honour_n the_o adore_v they_o with_o divine_a worship_n 14_o the_o five_o example_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n for_o thomas_n 3._o thomas_n lect._n 4._o in_o gal._n 3._o write_v that_o no_o work_n either_o ceremonial_a or_o moral_a be_v the_o cause_n why_o any_o man_n be_v just_a before_o god_n for_o work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n that_o man_n be_v just_a but_o the_o execution_n and_o manifestation_n of_o his_o justice_n because_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v with_o god_n by_o his_o work_n but_o by_o the_o habit_n of_o faith_n infuse_v this_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o his_o time_n by_o this_o that_o he_o be_v make_v a_o saint_n therein_o and_o be_v as_o 41._o as_o studiosus_fw-la impendio_fw-la pontificum_fw-la fr._n vict._n rel_n 1._o de_fw-la potest_fw-la eccl._n p._n 41._o they_o say_v of_o he_o exceed_o devote_a to_o the_o pope_n yea_o proaem_fw-la yea_o henriquez_n sum_n moral_n proaem_fw-la the_o five_o doctor_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o the_o light_n of_o all_o the_o world_n who_o bring_v all_o theology_n into_o a_o brief_a sum_n etc._n etc._n yet_o 6._o yet_o sesse_n 6._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v vary_v from_o this_o decree_a that_o man_n own_o inherent_a justice_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o his_o justification_n and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n since_o which_o time_n the_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o church_n have_v leave_v thomas_n in_o the_o point_n 15_o many_o other_o example_n may_v be_v give_v of_o their_o inconstancy_n and_o no_o doubt_n they_o can_v be_v content_a to_o alter_v much_o more_o if_o the_o fear_n of_o lose_v their_o credit_n with_o man_n do_v not_o restrain_v they_o as_o their_o own_o confession_n now_o and_o then_o unaware_o break_v out_o from_o they_o give_v probability_n we_o acknowledge_v free_o 365._o free_o biblioth_n sanct_n l._n 8._o pag_n 365._o say_v sixtus_n senensis_n that_o there_o be_v many_o fault_n in_o our_o latin_a edition_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o yet_o the_o church_n have_v leave_v therein_o lest_o the_o faithful_a who_o ear_n have_v always_o from_o their_o infancy_n be_v enure_v thereunto_o shall_v now_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o novelty_n of_o a_o exact_a correction_n and_o concern_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n 6._o kind_n fr._n ouand_n 4._o d._n 9_o prop._n 6._o one_o of_o they_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n due_o consider_v it_o be_v better_a to_o grant_v the_o cup_n then_o to_o deny_v it_o and_o touch_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n with_o divine_a worship_n 4._o worship_n bel._n de_fw-fr imag._n li._n 2._o c._n 22._o s●ar_n to_o 1._o disp_n 54._o sect_n 4._o the_o learn_a among_o they_o that_o even_o themselves_o hold_v it_o yet_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a to_o be_v utter_v in_o common_a talk_n or_o sermon_n before_o the_o people_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v worship_v and_o whereas_o to_o take_v away_o the_o odiousnes_n of_o this_o opinion_n that_o yield_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o a_o image_n 3._o image_n catarrh_n lib._n de_fw-fr imagine_v ador_n concl_n 6._o &_o 7._o peres_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o some_o will_v have_v they_o worship_v with_o a_o worship_n inferior_a to_o that_o which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o first_o sampler_n and_o 3._o and_o holk_n in_o sap._n lect_n 157._o durand_n 3._o d._n 9_o q._n 2._o picus_n mirand_n apol_n q._n 3._o some_o will_v have_v no_o worship_n at_o all_o give_v to_o they_o but_o only_a man_n shall_v use_v they_o to_o stir_v themselves_o up_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o sampler_n by_o kneel_v before_o they_o this_o be_v mislike_v by_o othersome_a 415._o othersome_a vazq_n de_fw-fr adorat_fw-la l._n 2._o nu_fw-la 415._o who_o think_v it_o can_v be_v propound_v to_o the_o people_n with_o small_a fruit_n yea_o it_o be_v foolishness_n to_o speak_v it_o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o learned_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v hold_v nothing_o so_o absolute_a but_o some_o of_o their_o fellow_n vary_v from_o it_o and_o what_o be_v propound_v therein_o as_o matter_n to_o believe_v and_o practice_v be_v mislike_v among_o themselves_o the_o most_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v alteration_n in_o some_o point_n or_o other_o whensoever_o occasion_n shall_v bring_v it_o in_o digression_n 24._o touch_v the_o contention_n among_o the_o learned_a of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o how_o the_o papist_n live_v not_o in_o that_o unity_n that_o be_v pretend_v 16_o they_o which_o know_v rome_n and_o papistry_n be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v in_o this_o matter_n only_o some_o ignorant_a person_n who_o the_o cunning_a handle_n of_o such_o as_o this_o jesuite_n be_v have_v get_v into_o their_o possession_n will_v believe_v no_o discord_n to_o be_v among_o they_o but_o be_v we_o all_o so_o blind_a that_o we_o can_v see_v none_o of_o this_o contention_n yet_o their_o noise_n &_o outcry_n in_o school_n counsel_n pulpit_n and_o consistory_n one_o against_o another_o will_v make_v we_o hear_v it_o the_o clamour_n of_o the_o contender_n resound_v in_o our_o ear_n no_o less_o than_o the_o noise_n of_o two_o army_n when_o they_o join_v battle_n or_o as_o the_o old_a philosopher_n of_o who_o timon_n who_o lucian_n in_o timon_n one_o say_v merry_o that_o with_o the_o noise_n of_o their_o disputation_n they_o so_o fill_v the_o ear_n of_o jupiter_n and_o make_v he_o deaf_a that_o he_o can_v not_o hear_v their_o prayer_n in_o who_o room_n philoso_n room_n schol._n in_o lud._n senec._n de_fw-fr morte_fw-la claud._n §._o facilius_fw-la inter_fw-la philoso_n say_v rhenanus_fw-la himself_z a_o papist_n have_v succeed_v a_o god_n name_n scotus_n aquinas_n egidius_n romanus_n and_o other_o who_o contention_n be_v no_o less_o then_o that_o which_o be_v among_o the_o philosopher_n that_o herein_o they_o may_v seem_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o resemble_v the_o old_a academic_n stoic_n and_o peripatetic_n for_o first_o 407._o first_o see_v auentin_n anal_n boio_fw-la l._n 6._o pag._n 407._o they_o have_v the_o family_n of_o the_o schoolman_n wherein_o every_o one_o profess_v his_o particular_a sectmaister_n thomas_n scot_n occam_n or_o durand_n where_o both_o master_n and_o scholar_n have_v spend_v their_o life_n and_o writing_n in_o nothing_o else_o but_o opposition_n against_o each_o other_o that_o it_o be_v true_o speak_v of_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o disputed_a or_o affirm_v by_o any_o one_o of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o gainsay_v by_o another_z thus_o the_o dominican_n and_o franciscan_a friar_n spend_v with_o their_o partaker_n whole_a age_n in_o quarrel_v about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o thus_o the_o modern_a doctor_n of_o this_o time_n contend_v about_o every_o thing_n depend_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n among_o themselves_o what_o they_o may_v say_v against_o we_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o i_o us._n i_o a_o offer_v make_v to_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o question_n between_o us._n offer_v to_o make_v demonstration_n have_v do_v it_o partly_o already_o throughout_o this_o treatise_n against_o any_o that_o will_v deny_v it_o that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o point_n deny_v or_o affirm_v against_o we_o wherein_o they_o vary_v not_o among_o themselves_o and_o if_o any_o papist_n will_v allege_v or_o set_v down_o what_o he_o think_v be_v the_o truth_n in_o any_o question_n or_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n controvert_v between_o we_o i_o will_v name_v he_o again_o a_o learned_a papist_n either_o old_a or_o new_a that_o say_v the_o contrary_a which_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v they_o have_v no_o unity_n 17_o this_o may_v also_o be_v confirm_v by_o their_o write_v one_o against_o another_o armenian_n another_o his_o sermon_n print_v with_o the_o book_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o
three_o text_n feed_v my_o sheep_n john_n 21._o belong_v likewise_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n for_o though_o in_o that_o place_n those_o word_n be_v direct_v to_o peter_n yet_o therein_o our_o saviour_n do_v but_o apply_v a_o general_a commandment_n to_o he_o and_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o duty_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o for_o what_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n peter_n sheep_n and_o not_o rather_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he_o be_v to_o preach_v according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a opposition_n that_o be_v between_o pastor_n and_o their_o flock_n or_o do_v feed_v suppose_v any_o more_o than_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o nation_n which_o every_o apostle_n be_v bid_v do_v and_o though_o it_o shall_v yet_o christ_n say_v to_o all_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o and_o it_o be_v like_a the_o father_n send_v his_o son_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n without_o any_o subjection_n to_o another_o 5.1_o another_o jer._n 3.15_o act._n 20.28_o 1._o pet._n 5.1_o and_o pastor_n inferior_a to_o the_o apostle_n be_v authorise_v to_o feed_v the_o flock_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n they_o be_v all_o pastor_n eccl._n pastor_n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccl._n say_v cyprian_n but_o the_o flock_n be_v one_o which_o with_o one_o consent_n be_v feed_v by_o all_o the_o apostle_n moreover_o the_o father_n out_o of_o this_o text_n prove_v that_o every_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v diligent_a in_o feed_v the_o flock_n commit_v to_o he_o which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o they_o think_v these_o word_n be_v mean_v to_o more_o than_o peter_n saint_n austin_n joh._n austin_n tract_n 121._o in_o joh._n say_v they_o which_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n with_o this_o mind_n to_o have_v they_o their_o own_o and_o not_o christ_n be_v convince_v thereby_o that_o they_o love_v not_o christ_n and_o against_o they_o this_o speech_n of_o christ_n if_o thou_o love_v i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n be_v to_o be_v urge_v chrysostome_n 2._o chrysostome_n de_fw-fr sacerd._n lib._n 2._o say_v our_o saviour_n at_o that_o time_n intend_v to_o teach_v both_o peter_n and_o we_o how_o dear_a his_o church_n be_v to_o he_o that_o so_o by_o this_o mean_n we_o also_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n may_v take_v upon_o we_o the_o cure_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o saint_n paul_n reprove_v peter_n at_o antioch_n show_v evident_o that_o every_o apostle_n have_v equal_a authority_n to_o feed_v not_o only_o the_o flock_n but_o one_o another_o else_o paul_n may_v not_o have_v rebuke_v he_o as_o he_o do_v and_o though_o our_o adversary_n stick_v reasonable_a well_o to_o this_o text_n and_o be_v loath_a to_o give_v the_o apostle_n any_o share_n therein_o with_o peter_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o all_o so_o resolute_a but_o that_o some_o of_o they_o confess_v flat_o as_o much_o as_o i_o answer_v cusanus_fw-la 13._o cusanus_fw-la concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o say_v if_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n yet_o it_o be_v manifest_v that_o feed_n be_v by_o word_n and_o example_n so_o also_o according_a to_o saint_n austin_n in_o his_o exposition_n upon_o that_o place_n the_o same_o commandment_n be_v give_v to_o all_o there_o where_o it_o be_v say_v go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v find_v nothing_o say_v to_o peter_n that_o import_v any_o power_n therefore_o we_o say_v true_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n in_o power_n be_v equal_a with_o peter_n the_o like_a 28._o like_a defence_n pacis_fw-la part_n 2._o c._n 28._o say_v marsilius_n that_o christ_n commit_v the_o office_n of_o feed_v to_o peter_n speak_v to_o he_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n which_o manner_n of_o speak_v he_o testify_v to_o have_v use_v in_o that_o he_o say_v what_o i_o say_v to_o one_o i_o say_v to_o all_o and_o albeit_o the_o rest_n will_v not_o grant_v thus_o much_o yet_o it_o follow_v evident_o and_o unanswerable_o of_o that_o which_o they_o do_v grant_v for_o 16.19_o for_o baro._n a_o 34._o n._n 201._o rhem._n mat._n 16.19_o they_o yield_v that_o no_o more_o be_v give_v peter_n here_o then_o be_v promise_v in_o mat_n 16._o where_o the_o key_n be_v mention_v but_o i_o have_v show_v and_o no_o papist_n can_v deny_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a in_o the_o key_n and_o that_o those_o word_n concern_v peter_n no_o more_o than_o the_o other_o disciple_n so_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v wilful_a obstinacy_n to_o say_v still_o that_o these_o word_n feed_v my_o sheep_n be_v mean_v to_o none_o but_o peter_n and_o let_v this_o suffice_v for_o the_o first_o issue_n between_o us._n 16_o the_o next_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o who_o soever_o any_o of_o the_o text_n allege_v be_v direct_v yet_o none_o of_o they_o intend_v that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n assume_v for_o he_o say_v that_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n christ_n promise_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o will_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n as_o upon_o a_o sure_a rock_n build_v his_o church_n meaning_n thereby_o the_o common_a conceit_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n give_v saint_n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o fullness_n of_o power_n and_o government_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n wherein_o the_o jesuite_n wilful_o misreport_v the_o text_n for_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n there_o of_o pope_n or_o successor_n but_o only_o of_o peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v his_o fancy_n to_o rome_n that_o put_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o how_o he_o be_v deceive_v herein_o you_o may_v perceive_v by_o this_o that_o evidentiam_fw-la that_o caiet_fw-mi tract_n de_fw-fr instit_fw-la pontific_n c._n 13._o §_o ad_fw-la huius_fw-la rei_fw-la evidentiam_fw-la the_o papist_n acknowledge_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o his_o beginning_n from_o christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n but_o from_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n at_o rome_n which_o be_v true_a than_o whatsoever_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n yet_o he_o give_v nothing_o to_o the_o pope_n for_o if_o he_o have_v his_o institution_n into_o the_o papacy_n have_v be_v by_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o fact_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o papist_n dare_v not_o say_v again_o christ_n say_v not_o to_o peter_n that_o upon_o he_o he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n but_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v it_o meaning_n as_o domini_fw-la as_o serm_n 13._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la saint_n augustine_n expound_v upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v know_v say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n i_o will_v build_v thou_o upon_o i_o not_o i_o upon_o thou_o for_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n whereupon_o peter_n himself_o be_v build_v since_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v already_o which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o 106._o and_o de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la l._n 4._o pag._n 106._o cyril_n say_v i_o think_v that_o by_o the_o rock_n christ_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o unmoveable_a faith_n of_o his_o disciple_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v found_v and_o stay_v from_o fall_v and_o hilary_n 2._o hilary_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la l._n 2._o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n be_v upon_o this_o rock_n of_o confession_n this_o faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o faith_n hell_n gate_n prevail_v not_o against_o she_o 5._o she_o hom._n in_o nat_n s._n petri._n go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o eus●bius_n emisenu●_n but_o baronius_n say_v the_o author_n of_o those_o homily_n be_v eucherius_n lugdunensis_n annal_n tom_fw-mi 6._o ann_n 441._o nu_fw-la 5._o eucherius_n say_v let_v we_o see_v what_o this_o be_v i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n upon_o this_o rock_n upon_o this_o rock_n which_o even_o now_o thou_o layd_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n upon_o this_o rock_n whi●h_v even_o now_o thou_o taught_v say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n upon_o this_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o faith_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n whereunto_o the_o apostle_n agree_v say_v other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v but_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v jesus_n christ_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o foundation_n but_o that_o rock_n which_o peter_n lay_v for_o a_o foundation_n when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n yea_o many_o learned_a papist_n also_o refuse_v this_o new_a exposition_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o well_o see_v the_o word_n can_v not_o bear_v it_o and_o therefore_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o father_n expound_v
no_o word_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v succeed_v peter_n but_o also_o for_o that_o we_o no_o where_n find_v that_o ever_o peter_n make_v choice_n of_o he_o or_o any_o other_o i_o say_v we_o find_v neither_o of_o these_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o most_o resolute_a papist_n and_o such_o as_o eager_o handle_v this_o matter_n 12._o matter_n caiet_fw-mi de_fw-mi divin_v instit_fw-la pontific_n c._n 13_o §_o ad_fw-la huius_fw-la bellar._n de_fw-fr pont._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o say_v the_o pope_n succeed_v peter_n in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o beginning_n from_o peter_n fact_n and_o not_o from_o christ_n institution_n which_o fact_n be_v that_o he_o make_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o th●re_o die_v and_o so_o it_o come_v about_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n succeed_v he_o and_o caietan_n add_v that_o not_o his_o death_n simple_o give_v the_o succession_n to_o rome_n but_o because_o he_o die_v there_o by_o christ_n special_a appointment_n which_o last_o point_n he_o and_o 3._o and_o qu._n vesper_n art_n 3._o cameracensis_n prove_v by_o a_o story_n that_o tell_v how_o p●ter_n by_o reason_n of_o persecution_n be_v mind_v to_o forsake_v rome_n as_o he_o be_v go_v christ_n meet_v he_o to_o who_o peter_n say_v lord_n whither_o go_v thou_o and_o c●rist_n answer_v i_o go_v to_o rome_n there_o to_o be_v crucify_v thereby_o admonish_v peter_n to_o return_v back_o again_o and_o die_v at_o rome_n so_o the_o pope_n succession_n depend_v upon_o the_o fact_n of_o peter_n and_o come_v from_o it_o and_o this_o fact_n contain_v his_o be_v at_o rome_n his_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o die_a at_o rome_n his_o die_a by_o christ_n appointment_n but_o what_o certainty_n be_v there_o of_o all_o this_o except_o a_o few_o humane_a story_n which_o be_v all_o subject_n to_o error_n especial_o for_o that_o which_o ca●etane_n say_v give_v the_o pope_n his_o succession_n his_o return_v to_o rome_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o vision_n the_o first_o author_n whereof_o be_v pauli_n be_v act._n petri_n &_o pauli_n linus_n a_o foolish_a book_n censure_v by_o 45._o by_o ●●●o_o a_o 69._o n._n 6._o &_o a_o 44._o n._n 45._o the_o papist_n themselves_o for_o a_o counterfeit_n or_o allow_v all_o the_o story_n to_o be_v true_a yet_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n and_o peter_n mind_n by_o this_o their_o fact_n to_o warrant_v the_o succession_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v bind_v for_o ever_o after_o to_o believe_v and_o accept_v it_o for_o see_v they_o will_v have_v we_o all_o damn_a unless_o we_o obey_v their_o pope_n as_o saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o succession_n authorize_v he_o over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o matter_n touch_v soul_n and_o conscience_n this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v it_o be_v but_o reason_n that_o they_o make_v it_o plain_a to_o we_o that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o succession_n which_o this_o conceit_n can_v do_v be_v indeed_o a_o very_a jest_n which_o i_o be_o persuade_v themselves_o believe_v nor_o for_o cameracensis_n 380._o cameracensis_n qu._n vesper_n art_n 3._o pag._n 380._o write_v that_o the_o papacy_n and_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n be_v two_o distinct_a thing_n and_o not_o so_o necessary_o conjoin_v together_o but_o they_o may_v be_v separate_v as_o for_o example_n if_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o council_n think_v it_o convenient_a he_o may_v leave_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o couple_n himself_o to_o another_o church_n in_o which_o case_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v no_o long_o be_v head_n nor_o have_v any_o sovereignty_n over_o christian_n and_o touch_v the_o choose_n of_o the_o pope_n 24._o pope_n fr._n victor_n relect_v 2._o de_fw-la potes_fw-la eccle_n nu_fw-la 24._o they_o hold_v the_o manner_n thereof_o to_o be_v a_o humane_a ordinance_n which_o may_v be_v change_v the_o which_o be_v absurd_a if_o christ_n by_o s._n peter_n deed_n appropriate_v the_o succession_n to_o rome_n to_o alter_v it_o again_o or_o change_v the_o form_n it_o be_v a_o safe_a way_n therefore_o that_o alphonsus_n 19_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 9_o pag._n 19_o hold_v though_o our_o faith_n bound_v we_o to_o bele●ue_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o by_o the_o same_o faith_n tie_v to_o believe_v that_o leo_n or_o clemens_n this_o or_o that_o pope_n for_o example_n be_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o peter_n for_o thus_o a_o man_n may_v shake_v off_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o will_v by_o pick_v a_o quarrel_n to_o the_o succession_n but_o the_o pope_n best_a course_n be_v see_v the_o succession_n be_v so_o doubtful_a to_o style_v himself_o no_o long_o peter_n successor_n but_o peter_n himself_o and_o in_o his_o name_n to_o send_v out_o his_o bull_n and_o decree_n as_o pope_n stephen_n do_v when_o he_o send_v to_o pippin_n for_o aid_n against_o astulphus_n and_o the_o lombard_n besiege_v rome_n ●17_n rome_n caes_n baron_fw-fr a_o 755._o nu_fw-la ●17_n thus_o he_o write_v peter_n call_v a_o apostle_n of_o jesu_n christ_n to_o you_o most_o excellent_a man_n pipin_n charles_n and_o charlemagne_n three_o king_n and_o to_o all_o bishop_n abbot_n priest_n monk_n duke_n earl_n and_o general_n etc._n etc._n i_o peter_n the_o apostle_n call_v by_o christ_n and_o ordain_v to_o be_v the_o enlightener_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o who_o he_o commit_v his_o sheep_n say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n i_o the_o apostle_n peter_n who_o adopt_a son_n you_o be_v admonish_v you_o that_o you_o present_o come_v and_o defend_v this_o city_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o adversary_n because_o the_o naughty_a lombard_n afflict_v and_o oppress_v it_o and_o doubt_v you_o not_o beleve_v but_o trust_v assure_o that_o i_o myself_o as_o if_o i_o stand_v quick_a before_o you_o do_v thus_o exhort_v you_o yea_o and_o with_o i_o our_o lady_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n the_o virgin_n marie_n command_v you_o and_o also_o the_o throne_n dominion_n and_o heavenly_a host_n with_o christ_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n that_o you_o have_v compassion_n on_o the_o roman_a city_n and_o church_n commit_v to_o i_o and_o deliver_v it_o lest_o my_o body_n and_o my_o house_n where_o it_o rest_v be_v defile_v by_o the_o lombard_n that_o i_o peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o god_n at_o the_o last_o day_n may_v yield_v you_o mutual_a defence_n again_o and_o prepare_v for_o you_o tabernacle_n in_o heaven_n thus_o write_v the_o pope_n 800._o year_n since_o still_v himself_o saint_n peter_n which_o custom_n vene●_n custom_n an●_n possible_a he_o have_v not_o paulus_n i●●eut_fw-fr idemque_fw-la petrus_n vicem_fw-la christi_fw-la ageus_fw-la i●_n terris_fw-la say_v baronius_n speak_v of_o paul_n the_o present_a pope_n his_o excomunicate_v the_o venetian_n paraen_n ad_fw-la rempub_fw-la vene●_n if_o he_o have_v not_o give_v over_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o foolish_a bashfulness_n possible_a by_o this_o time_n the_o world_n will_v have_v give_v over_o question_v about_o his_o succession_n and_o have_v take_v he_o for_o peter_n himself_o and_o why_o not_o the_o world_n believe_v he_o to_o be_v saint_n peter_n as_o well_o as_o papist_n think_v he_o saint_n peter_n successor_n digression_n 30._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o to_o this_o day_n how_o peter_n suppose_a primacy_n be_v prove_v or_o what_o it_o contain_v but_o they_o be_v uncertain_a in_o expound_v the_o main_a text_n of_o scripture_n whereupon_o they_o build_v it_o 39_o i_o be_v desirous_a a_o little_a to_o divert_v into_o this_o matter_n because_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o papist_n have_v great_a fancy_n to_o the_o conceit_n than_o other_o knowledge_n of_o it_o or_o skill_n to_o discern_v it_o think_v their_o learned_a man_n prove_v it_o more_o than_o authentical_o the_o rumour_n and_o common_a impression_n whereunto_o the_o vulgar_a be_v always_o subject_a have_v indeed_o prevail_v with_o they_o and_o carry_v they_o away_o into_o this_o conceit_n according_a to_o nepot_n to_o hierom._n ad_fw-la nepot_n the_o say_n of_o nazianzen_n the_o rude_a vulgar_a wonder_n at_o that_o they_o understand_v not_o whereas_o i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n more_o uncertain_o expound_v then_o the_o ordinary_a text_n allege_v for_o peter_n supremacy_n all_o the_o learned_a papist_n both_o old_a and_o new_a so_o stagger_v and_o vary_v one_o from_o another_o that_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v and_o worth_a the_o note_n 40_o first_o we_o bid_v they_o point_v out_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n give_v it_o he_o whereto_o card._n cont._n 103._o cont._n de_fw-fr sacram._n chr_n leg_n l._n 3._o p._n 103._o answer_v that_o in_o his_o judgement_n it_o be_v chief_o
he_o second_o christ_n say_v simon_n love_v thou_o i_o more_o than_o these_o why_o do_v he_o examine_v he_o of_o his_o love_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n but_o that_o he_o intend_v he_o more_o authority_n i_o answer_v to_o make_v he_o see_v his_o fault_n who_o have_v late_o undertake_v more_o than_o all_o even_o to_o die_v with_o he_o though_o all_o shall_v forsake_v he_o yet_o when_o it_o come_v to_o trial_n perform_v less_o than_o any_o deny_v he_o thrice_o which_o none_o else_o do_v and_o possible_a also_o to_o let_v he_o know_v his_o sin_n be_v pardon_v 7.47_o pardon_v luc._n 7.47_o because_o more_o be_v forgive_v to_o he_o that_o love_v more_o three_o he_o not_o only_o examine_v he_o of_o his_o love_n but_o also_o thereby_o draw_v out_o of_o he_o a_o fervent_a confession_n of_o it_o i_o answer_v this_o he_o do_v also_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o former_a sin_n 103._o sin_n isid_n pelusiot_n l._n 1._o ep._n 103._o by_o a_o threefold_a confession_n to_o heal_v his_o threefold_a denial_n and_o to_o assure_v his_o fellow_n disciple_n of_o his_o repentance_n and_o to_o show_v by_o his_o example_n how_o dear_a the_o love_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o that_o meddle_v with_o feed_v christ_n flock_n four_o he_o bid_v he_o feed_v and_o feed_v be_v rule_v with_o fullness_n of_o power_n i_o answer_v he_o bid_v he_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n which_o be_v the_o people_n and_o not_o the_o apostle_n proper_o which_o prove_v that_o feed_n have_v no_o such_o meaning_n beside_o feed_v signify_v rule_v not_o every_o way_n but_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o appertain_v to_o the_o person_n that_o do_v feed_v and_o therefore_o in_o king_n it_o be_v to_o rule_v with_o fullness_n of_o power_n but_o in_o pastor_n with_o the_o word_n and_o discipline_n only_o as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o all_o bishop_n and_o teacher_n be_v call_v 4.11_o call_v eph_n 4.11_o pastor_n and_o bid_v 5.1_o bid_v jer._n 3.15_o ezec_n 34_o act._n 20.28_o 1._o pet._n 5.1_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o no_o man_n think_v they_o be_v make_v pope_n thereby_o last_o peter_n be_v bid_v feed_v the_o sheep_n &_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o part_n of_o christ_n sheep_n therefore_o he_o must_v feed_v they_o i_o answer_v this_o be_v grant_v but_o then_o feed_v signify_v no_o more_o but_o edify_v by_o word_n and_o example_n and_o so_o as_o peter_n must_v feed_v the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n must_v feed_v he_o again_o by_o the_o same_o commandment_n of_o christ_n 16._o christ_n marc._n 16._o that_o bid_v they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n as_o 2._o as_o gal._n 2._o paul_n feed_v he_o at_o antioch_n by_o reproof_n and_o whereas_o some_o urge_v that_o the_o sheep_n signify_v the_o universal_a church_n because_o christ_n say_v not_o these_o be_v those_o sheep_n in_o particular_a but_o my_o sheeepe_a in_o general_a and_o so_o peter_n be_v set_v over_o the_o universal_a church_n this_o be_v but_o a_o speculation_n for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v strain_v into_o so_o wide_a a_o signification_n he_o can_v not_o feed_v it_o because_o he_o can_v feed_v no_o more_o than_o that_o part_n which_o be_v in_o his_o time_n or_o follow_v after_o he_o wherein_o the_o other_o apostle_n feed_v in_o community_n with_o he_o and_o feed_v be_v not_o popingay_v thus_o we_o see_v that_o unless_o the_o papist_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o rack_n the_o word_n of_o scripture_n beyond_o all_o compass_n of_o ordinary_a understanding_n and_o bring_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o shall_v fetch_v from_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o bible_n sufficient_a to_o uphold_v any_o part_n of_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v so_o confident_a §_o 37._o so_o that_o this_o difference_n may_v be_v assign_v between_o any_o sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n not_o unite_v among_o themselves_o by_o any_o link_n which_o be_v able_a to_o contain_v and_o continue_v they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n whereas_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v plebs_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la adunata_fw-la &_o grex_fw-la pastori_fw-la svo_fw-la adhaerens_fw-la a_o people_n conjoin_v to_o their_o priest_n and_o a_o flock_n cleave_v to_o their_o chief_a pastor_n who_o while_o it_o hear_v as_o it_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v it_o be_v unpossible_a but_o it_o shall_v retain_v unity_n of_o faith_n like_o contrary_a according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o same_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 5._o ad_fw-la cornel._n contra_fw-la haeret._n non_fw-la aliunde_fw-la haereses_fw-la obortae_fw-la sunt_fw-la aut_fw-la nata_fw-la schismata_fw-la quàm_fw-la inde_fw-la quòd_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la non_fw-la obtemperatur_fw-la nec_fw-la unus_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la ad_fw-la tempus_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la &_o unus_fw-la iudex_fw-la vice_fw-la christi_fw-la cogitatur_fw-la nor_o from_o any_o other_o root_n have_v heresy_n and_o schism_n spring_v up_o but_o from_o this_o that_o man_n do_v not_o obey_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v they_o consider_v how_o that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v one_o priest_n and_o one_o judge_v for_o the_o time_n in_o stead_n of_o christ_n the_o answer_n 1_o how_o well_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v link_v together_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o former_a section_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o jesuit_n will_v assign_v a_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o heretic_n which_o will_v be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v between_o fish_n and_o herring_n he_o must_v do_v it_o by_o something_o else_o then_o by_o their_o unity_n whereunto_o saint_n cyprian_n give_v no_o testimony_n in_o the_o word_n allege_v but_o that_o it_o please_v the_o jesuite_n thereby_o to_o impose_v upon_o his_o ignorant_a reader_n for_o first_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o any_o of_o both_o place_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o every_o part_n of_o the_o church_n whersoever_o &_o say_v it_o be_v a_o company_n adhere_v to_o their_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n next_o by_o this_o one_o pastor_n and_o judge_n whereto_o the_o church_n adher_v he_o mean_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o himself_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o appeal_n and_o rebaptisation_n but_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o circuit_n three_o suppose_v he_o have_v conceit_v the_o pope_n and_o by_o these_o word_n immediate_o mean_v he_o yet_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o pope_n now_o who_o be_v degenerate_a into_o another_o creature_n then_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o many_o good_a thing_n may_v be_v say_v of_o he_o then_o that_o can_v now_o and_o of_o his_o church_n then_o which_o since_o that_o time_n be_v perish_v 2_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o say_v the_o church_n be_v a_o people_n cleave_v to_o their_o priest_n he_o mean_v it_o not_o of_o all_o god_n church_n cleave_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o every_o particular_a church_n obey_v their_o pastor_n according_a to_o saint_n paul_n admonition_n 13.17_o admonition_n heb._n 13.17_o obey_v and_o submit_v yourselves_o to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o you_o and_o the_o want_n hereof_o he_o say_v be_v the_o root_n of_o schism_n not_o the_o dissent_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v his_o meaning_n because_o in_o florent_fw-la in_o lib._n 4._o ep._n 9_o ad_fw-la florent_fw-la another_o epistle_n he_o have_v the_o same_o word_n apply_v they_o to_o himself_o and_o complain_v thereby_o that_o some_o have_v underhand_o refuse_v he_o and_o communicate_v with_o other_o for_o the_o novatians_n at_o carthage_n in_o a_o schism_n have_v make_v they_o a_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o and_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n false_o that_o he_o be_v lawful_o elect_v the_o which_o be_v against_o the_o custom_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o to_o urge_v as_o you_o see_v the_o unity_n of_o one_o bishop_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o church-government_n of_o that_o time_n philipp_n time_n hiero._n comment_n in_o tit_n c._n 1._o chrysost_n hom_n 1_o add_v philipp_n which_o be_v to_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n hence_o proceed_v his_o word_n touch_v every_o bishop_n in_o his_o own_o place_n as_o the_o jesuite_n have_v allege_v they_o whereby_o you_o see_v how_o well_o he_o prove_v the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o pope_n even_o as_o well_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v make_v that_o proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o church_n which_o appertain_v to_o every_o bishop_n and_o every_o church_n and_o expound_v that_o of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o import_v no_o more_o but_o ordinary_a government_n use_v by_o pastor_n in_o their_o own_o charge_n this_o kind_n of_o dispute_v be_v call_v enclose_v of_o commons_o §_o 38._o second_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v
not_o holy_a because_o not_o only_o most_o of_o their_o man_n be_v evident_o more_o wicked_a then_o in_o old_a time_n before_o their_o come_n as_o those_o can_v tell_v that_o have_v see_v both_o and_o be_v confess_v by_o luther_n himself_o who_o in_o postill_n super_fw-la euangel_n dom._n primae_fw-la aduentus_fw-la say_v thus_o sunt_fw-la nunc_fw-la homines_fw-la magis_fw-la vindictae_fw-la cupidi_fw-la magis_fw-la avari_fw-la magis_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la misericordia_fw-la remoti_fw-la magis_fw-la immodesti_fw-la &_o indisciplinati_fw-la multoque_fw-la deteriores_fw-la quàm_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la in_o papatu_fw-la man_n be_v now_o more_o revengeful_a more_o covetous_a more_o unmerciful_a more_o immodest_a and_o unruly_a and_o much_o worse_a than_o when_o they_o be_v papist_n the_o like_a testimony_n be_v give_v by_o smidelinus_n another_o of_o their_o doctor_n conc._n 4._o super_fw-la cap._n 21._o lucae_n which_o for_o brevity_n i_o omit_v the_o answer_n 1_o for_o answer_n to_o this_o the_o protestant_n have_v two_o thing_n to_o say_v first_o that_o it_o be_v false_a their_o man_n be_v more_o wicked_a than_o the_o papist_n in_o old_a time_n be_v the_o which_o be_v prove_v by_o compare_v they_o together_o and_o let_v that_o comparison_n give_v the_o trial_n in_o the_o next_o digression_n and_o whereas_o the_o jesuite_n say_v they_o can_v tell_v that_o have_v see_v both_o i_o answer_v this_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o let_v we_o refer_v ourselves_o to_o their_o report_n which_o by_o and_o by_o shall_v be_v set_v down_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v probable_a the_o papist_n in_o old_a time_n be_v such_o as_o they_o be_v now_o which_o if_o they_o be_v i_o be_o content_v our_o life_n be_v lay_v together_o and_o compare_v for_o the_o present_a experience_n that_o we_o have_v this_o day_n in_o england_n touch_v papist_n and_o their_o conversation_n will_v acquit_v we_o though_o their_o outrage_n and_o confusion_n be_v such_o and_o have_v wrought_v we_o that_o sorrow_n that_o we_o can_v take_v small_a pleasure_n in_o recount_v it_o their_o treason_n against_o the_o state_n more_o than_o montuous_a practise_v the_o very_a desolation_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o strange_a conspiracy_n unnatural_a invasion_n barbarous_a murder_n unutterable_a mischief_n we_o make_v account_n be_v wickedness_n enough_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o name_n and_o reputation_n of_o holiness_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o they_o that_o live_v in_o these_o part_n among_o people_n popish_o addict_v live_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o sodom_n and_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v if_o all_o disorder_n be_v not_o rife_a in_o those_o part_n among_o we_o where_o the_o people_n be_v most_o popeho_o other_o parish_n where_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v teach_v be_v reduce_v to_o civility_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o swarm_n with_o priest_n and_o recusant_n remain_v savage_a and_o barbarous_a that_o no_o christian_a man_n may_v endure_v their_o manner_n and_o for_o my_o own_o part_n have_v spend_v much_o of_o my_o time_n among_o they_o this_o i_o have_v find_v that_o in_o all_o excess_n of_o sin_n papist_n have_v be_v the_o ringleader_n in_o riotous_a company_n in_o drunken_a meeting_n in_o seditious_a assembly_n and_o practice_n in_o profane_v the_o sabbath_n in_o quarrel_n and_o brawl_n in_o stageplays_a green_n ale_n and_o all_o heathenish_a custom_n the_o common_a people_n of_o that_o sort_n general_o bury_v in_o sin_n swear_v more_o than_o can_v be_v express_v uncleanness_n drunkenness_n perfidiousness_n vile_a and_o odious_a their_o family_n untaught_a and_o dissolute_a their_o behaviour_n fierce_a and_o full_a of_o all_o contumely_n injury_n inhumanity_n full_a of_o slanderous_a report_n wild_a look_n and_o all_o unchristian_a usage_n towards_o any_o not_o of_o their_o own_o religion_n that_o i_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v we_o may_v all_o cast_v our_o cap_n at_o they_o for_o atheism_n and_o all_o that_o naught_o be_v the_o which_o i_o will_v not_o have_v touch_v because_o some_o will_v mislike_v it_o but_o that_o the_o jesuit_n word_n they_o can_v tell_v that_o have_v see_v both_o urge_v i_o to_o it_o and_o have_v see_v it_o with_o my_o own_o eye_n and_o smart_v a_o long_a time_n under_o it_o i_o think_v it_o will_v be_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o confusion_n of_o papistry_n to_o let_v the_o truth_n be_v know_v and_o to_o admonish_v the_o priest_n lurk_v in_o the_o country_n if_o they_o will_v needs_o make_v the_o world_n roman_a catholic_a yet_o that_o they_o teach_v it_o more_o civility_n withal_o 2_o his_o next_o reason_n to_o prove_v our_o church_n unholy_a be_v the_o confession_n of_o luther_n and_o smideline_n and_o do_v not_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n complain_v as_o much_o against_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n which_o yet_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n what_o age_n or_o people_n or_o church_n be_v ever_o yet_o so_o holy_a but_o the_o preacher_n thereof_o find_v matter_n of_o reproof_n in_o it_o ay_o but_o luther_n say_v man_n be_v now_o much_o worse_a than_o when_o they_o be_v papist_n he_o say_v so_o indeed_o but_o he_o add_v withal_o that_o the_o cause_n hereof_o be_v for_o that_o man_n receive_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n therefore_o god_n in_o his_o anger_n give_v they_o up_o to_o their_o own_o sin_n wherein_o he_o charge_v not_o the_o true_a believer_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o only_o such_o hypocrite_n as_o make_v a_o show_n without_o sincerity_n the_o very_a like_o complaint_n be_v in_o chrysostome_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n but_o now_o say_v 49._o say_v op._n imper_v in_o math._n hom_n 49._o he_o christian_n be_v become_v either_o such_o as_o heretic_n and_o pagan_n be_v or_o worse_o yea_o and_o their_o conversation_n of_o life_n though_o it_o be_v in_o schism_n be_v with_o more_o continency_n from_o sin_n then_o among_o the_o christian_n here_o chrysostome_n say_v the_o christian_n be_v worse_o than_o pagan_n as_o luther_n say_v they_o be_v worse_o than_o papist_n and_o yet_o the_o jesuite_n dare_v not_o conclude_v that_o therefore_o the_o pagan_n and_o not_o the_o christian_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o hypocrite_n be_v always_o mingle_v with_o the_o saint_n as_o chaff_n be_v with_o the_o wheat_n and_o by_o their_o sin_n bring_v a_o show_n of_o evil_n upon_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o be_v impute_v unto_o it_o but_o saint_n augustine_n answer_v this_o objection_n better_o than_o i_o can_v which_o if_o our_o adversary_n will_v mark_v this_o complaint_n of_o our_o unholinesse_n be_v soon_o at_o a_o end_n and_o now_o 161._o now_o epist_n 161._o say_v he_o the_o fault_n of_o evil_a man_n be_v cast_v in_o our_o tooth_n not_o we_o neither_o but_o other_o man_n and_o they_o also_o in_o part_n unknown_a the_o which_o if_o we_o do_v see_v to_o be_v true_a and_o present_a before_o our_o eye_n and_o spare_v the_o cockle_n for_o the_o wheat_n sake_n do_v tolerate_v in_o regard_n of_o unity_n he_o will_v think_v we_o not_o only_o worthy_a of_o no_o reproof_n but_o of_o great_a praise_n and_o jerome_n be_v of_o mind_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o vantage_n to_o heretic_n thus_o he_o say_v 78._o say_v ep._n 78._o be_v you_o therefore_o no_o heretic_n if_o some_o upon_o your_o report_n have_v think_v we_o sinner_n the_o same_o thing_n we_o answer_v the_o papist_n 3_o second_o we_o say_v that_o if_o all_o be_v true_a which_o be_v object_v and_o we_o as_o bad_a as_o the_o jesuite_n conceit_v yet_o be_v not_o this_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v we_o the_o false_a church_n for_o what_o praescrip_n what_o de_fw-fr praescrip_n say_v tertullian_n do_v man_n use_v to_o try_v the_o faith_n by_o the_o person_n or_o the_o person_n by_o the_o faith_n and_o saint_n augustine_n have_v a_o whole_a 137._o whole_a epist_n 137._o epistle_n write_v of_o purpose_n to_o confute_v they_o that_o labour_v to_o make_v the_o church_n odious_a by_o object_v the_o fault_n of_o such_o as_o live_v therein_o in_o that_o epistle_n he_o have_v these_o word_n object_n nothing_o against_o heretic_n but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v not_o catholic_a lest_o you_o be_v like_a unto_o they_o who_o have_v nothing_o wherewithal_o to_o defend_v their_o cause_n fall_v to_o gather_v up_o the_o fault_n of_o man_n that_o when_o they_o can_v charge_v the_o truth_n itself_o they_o may_v yet_o bring_v into_o hatred_n those_o that_o preach_v it_o and_o what_o catholic_a man_n 3._o man_n apol._n contra_fw-la ruffian_n l._n 3._o say_v jerome_n in_o the_o disputation_n of_o sect_n do_v ever_o object_v the_o fault_n of_o life_n against_o his_o adversary_n with_o who_o he_o dispute_v yea_o the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v pinch_v with_o this_o kind_n of_o reason_v and_o taste_v the_o inconvenience_n thereof_o by_o reason_n their_o own_o life_n be_v worse_o than_o any_o begin_v to_o disclaim_v it_o that_o you_o may_v see_v
for_o the_o most_o part_n also_o neglect_v such_o exercise_n of_o religion_n by_o prayer_n contemplation_n and_o repentance_n as_o of_o right_a aught_o to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o outward_a abstinence_n yea_o they_o place_n and_o practice_v fast_v 390._o fast_v dicimus_fw-la quod_fw-la de_fw-la essentia_fw-la iciunij_fw-la quoad_fw-la mo_z dum_fw-la sunt_fw-la duo_fw-la scil_n una_fw-la comestio_fw-la in_o spacio_fw-la 24_o horarum_fw-la &_o abstinentia_fw-la à_fw-la carnibus_fw-la quis_fw-la &_o lacticinijs_fw-la llamas_n sum._n eccl._n p._n 390._o only_o in_o forbear_v flesh_n and_o thing_n come_v of_o flesh_n on_o certain_a day_n allow_v themselves_o in_o steed_n thereof_o not_o only_o fish_v which_o be_v as_o good_a as_o flesh_n but_o that_o which_o be_v dainty_a wine_n conserve_n sweet_a meat_n and_o such_o like_a in_o as_o great_a measure_n as_o can_v be_v as_o the_o experience_n of_o this_o our_o country_n show_v among_o such_o as_o be_v popish_o affect_v 3_o and_o suppose_v we_o have_v omit_v all_o fast_v indeed_o and_o allow_v no_o time_n for_o it_o yet_o some_o papist_n will_v have_v bear_v we_o company_n herein_o that_o so_o themselves_o may_v be_v guilty_a of_o break_v fast_a day_n as_o well_o as_o we_o for_o 262._o for_o catharin_n adu_fw-la nova_fw-la dogm_n caietan_n p._n 262._o caietan_n hold_v it_o be_v not_o where_o command_v but_o only_o by_o custom_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o be_v necessary_a neither_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n nor_o the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n wherein_o though_o we_o refuse_v his_o judgement_n yet_o touch_v our_o put_n away_o the_o distinction_n of_o meat_n and_o day_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o what_o liberty_n or_o looseness_n can_v possible_o be_v imagine_v to_o proceed_v from_o eat_v flesh_n more_o them_z from_o eat_v of_o fish_n sweet_a meat_n spice_n &_o other_o thing_n fine_a they_o flesh_n which_o the_o 26._o the_o tho._n 22_o qu._n 147._o art_n 6._o 7._o 8._o llam_fw-la method_n part_n 3._o c._n 5._o §._o 24._o 26._o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v and_o how_o may_v it_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v such_o disorder_n on_o a_o friday_n or_o in_o lent_n or_o on_o a_o saint_n even_o to_o eat_v butter_n or_o egg_n or_o a_o bit_n of_o undainty_a flesh_n when_o they_o that_o be_v busy_a in_o control_v it_o the_o same_o day_n will_v drink_v strong_a wine_n and_o other_o drink_v and_o eat_v confection_n of_o better_a stuff_n and_o warm_a operation_n or_o why_o shall_v a_o man_n be_v censure_v for_o eat_v his_o meat_n on_o a_o ember_n day_n that_o fast_v careful_o and_o zealous_o upon_o any_o day_n without_o respect_n of_o difference_n especial_o 132._o especial_o fran._n victo_n relect_v 9_o de_fw-la temperant_fw-la p._n 132._o our_o adversary_n confess_v there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o nourishment_n either_o of_o plant_n or_o live_a creature_n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n we_o may_v lawful_o use_v it_o nothing_o can_v be_v object_v but_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n for_o 268._o for_o rational_a l._n 6._o c._n 7_o nu_fw-la 22._o p._n 268._o durands_n reason_n be_v too_o gross_a that_o fish_n be_v eat_v and_o not_o flesh_n because_o god_n curse_v the_o earth_n but_o not_o the_o water_n in_o that_o his_o spirit_n move_v on_o they_o but_o what_o such_o authority_n have_v a_o particular_a church_n to_o make_v a_o general_a law_n against_o that_o which_o god_n and_o nature_n leave_v at_o large_a and_o what_o such_o iurisd_v ction_n have_v rome_n of_o late_o obtain_v that_o it_o shall_v forbid_v that_o which_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n permit_v 4_o for_o 34._o for_o theo●_n epit_fw-la divin_v decret_n c._n ult._n niceph_n l._n 12_o c._n 34._o all_o antiquity_n can_v witness_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n fast_v be_v hold_v a_o indifferent_a thing_n &_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o mind_n therein_o 8._o therein_o laxus_n ac_fw-la libre_fw-la modus_fw-la abstinendi_fw-la ponitur_fw-la eúctis_fw-la neque_fw-la nos_fw-la severus_fw-la terror_fw-la impellit_fw-la sva_fw-la que●que_fw-la cogit_fw-la velle_fw-la potestas_fw-la pr●d_n cathem_n he_o 8._o no_o law_n bind_v he_o to_o this_o or_o that_o manner_n as_o 262._o as_o comment_fw-fr in_o act._n c._n 13._o quem_fw-la refert_fw-la catha_n adu_fw-la caiet_fw-mi p._n 262._o caietan_n confess_v montanus_n a_o condemn_a heretic_n be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o bring_v in_o the_o law_n of_o fast_v from_o who_o the_o papist_n have_v borrow_v they_o for_o irenaeus_n that_o live_v 1400._o year_n ago_o 39_o ago_o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 26._o niceph._n l._n 4._o c._n 39_o testify_v concern_v the_o keep_n of_o lent_n in_o his_o time_n that_o some_o fast_v before_o easter_n one_o day_n only_o some_o two_o day_n some_o more_o and_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v well_o maintain_v notwithstanding_o all_o this_o variety_n 135._o variety_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom_n 2._o the_o ieiun_n p._n 135._o basil_n mention_v only_o five_o day_n and_o socrates_n 22._o socrates_n hist_o l_o 5_o c._n 22._o write_v how_o it_o be_v observe_v one_o way_n in_o one_o place_n and_o another_o way_n in_o another_o they_o in_o rome_n fast_v three_o week_n only_o and_o except_v saterday_n and_o lord_n day_n the_o illyrian_n and_o greek_n six_o week_n other_o begin_v seven_o week_n before_o easter_n yet_o so_o as_o they_o fast_v but_o a_o few_o day_n of_o all_o that_o time_n the_o like_a variety_n they_o observe_v in_o meat_n for_o in_o some_o place_n they_o eat_v no_o live_a thing_n at_o all_o some_o only_a fish_n some_o fish_n and_o foul_a some_o dry_a bread_n some_o will_v eat_v no_o berry_n or_o egg_n and_o some_o not_o so_o much_o as_o bread_n for_o in_o these_o matter_n the_o apostle_n leave_v every_o man_n to_o his_o own_o will_n 11._o will_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 11._o spiridion_n the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n though_o he_o keep_v lend_v yet_o be_v it_o but_o upon_o certain_a day_n that_o he_o fast_v and_o when_o a_o stranger_n come_v to_o he_o upon_o one_o of_o those_o same_o day_n he_o set_v swine_n flesh_n before_o he_o and_o eat_v thereof_o with_o he_o yea_o graec_fw-la yea_o c●rop●lat_fw-la de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d sic_fw-la p_o 118._o &_o i●i_fw-la pacius_n annot_fw-mi p._n 322._o graec_fw-la they_o keep_v a_o lent_n before_o the_o feast_n of_o christ_n nativity_n also_o which_o we_o do_v not_o and_o touch_v saterday_n 55._o saterday_n ignat._n ep_v ad_fw-la philip._n sext._n syn._n in_o trul._n c._n 55._o some_o utter_o condemn_v fast_v that_o day_n yet_o 86._o yet_o aug._n ep_v 86._o other_o observe_v it_o and_o 75._o and_o haeres_fw-la 75._o epiphanius_n think_v it_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o fast_a wednesday_n and_o friday_n except_v those_o between_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n which_o yet_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n observe_v not_o and_o as_o for_o ember_n day_n and_o saint_n even_n we_o find_v no_o use_n of_o they_o for_o fast_v till_o of_o late_a time_n and_o touch_v this_o whole_a question_n of_o fast_a day_n let_v it_o be_v mark_v what_o finem_fw-la what_o ep_v 86._o add_v casulan_n pa_z nò_fw-la ante_fw-la finem_fw-la saint_n augustine_n write_v to_o a_o friend_n of_o he_o if_o say_v he_o you_o ask_v my_o opinion_n concern_v this_o matter_n i_o find_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o we_o be_v command_v to_o fast_o but_o what_o day_n we_o must_v fast_o and_o what_o day_n we_o must_v not_o i_o find_v it_o not_o determine_v by_o any_o commandment_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n so_o that_o if_o we_o be_v faulty_a because_o we_o fast_v not_o after_o the_o romish_a manner_n than_o themselves_o be_v likewise_o faulty_a because_o they_o fast_v not_o after_o the_o primitive_a order_n there_o be_v no_o great_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v condemn_v we_o for_o neglect_v their_o fast_n than_o why_o we_o shall_v condemn_v they_o for_o neglect_v the_o fast_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n nor_o any_o cause_n why_o our_o liberty_n in_o the_o use_n of_o meat_n and_o day_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o worse_a part_n now_o than_o the_o same_o liberty_n use_v of_o old_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o these_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o fast_v 5_o and_o possible_a our_o accuser_n break_v fast_v day_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o we_o do_v for_o first_o they_o eat_v as_o often_o and_o as_o good_a as_o we_o do_v when_o they_o fast_o next_o they_o have_v dispensation_n 395._o dispensation_n dispensati_n ieiunium_fw-la non_fw-la frangunt_fw-la llam_fw-la metho_fw-mi pag._n 395._o which_o exempt_v they_o from_o fast_v so_o common_o and_o of_o course_n that_o any_o man_n may_v see_v the_o pope_n define_v fast_v by_o meat_n and_o day_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o utter_v his_o pardon_n
three_o they_o have_v collation_n which_o they_o hold_v by_o prescription_n that_o be_v equal_a to_o set_v feast_n for_o in_o spain_n on_o the_o even_o of_o the_o nativity_n for_o example_n they_o have_v a_o bountiful_a supper_n exceed_v the_o measure_n of_o fast_v make_v of_o fruit_n conserve_n marchpane_n and_o such_o like_a 393._o like_a llam_fw-la ubi_fw-la sup_n pag._n 393._o which_o they_o think_v be_v lawful_a though_o it_o hold_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o fast_v four_o they_o have_v custom_n allow_v they_o on_o fast_v day_n to_o do_v as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v 52._o do_v llam_fw-la ubi_fw-la sup_n pag._n 369._o ouan_n 4._o d._n 16._o pro._n 52._o for_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o spain_n and_o castille_n they_o use_v egg_n cheese_n butter_n yea_o the_o lard_n of_o swine_n flesh_n and_o general_o on_o saturday_n they_o eat_v the_o inward_o of_o any_o beast_n with_o the_o head_n and_o foot_n yea_o any_o part_n of_o a_o swine_n the_o buttock_n except_v may_v it_o please_v the_o papist_n now_o either_o to_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o do_v what_o they_o do_v themselves_o or_o else_o to_o invite_v we_o to_o their_o table_n on_o fast_a day_n that_o we_o may_v have_v part_n with_o they_o see_v their_o hospitality_n be_v so_o good_a when_o we_o be_v bind_v out_o from_o feast_v at_o home_n this_o be_v that_o which_o ●●_o which_o joan._n sarisb_n policrat_fw-mi l._n 7._o c._n ●●_o a_o bishop_n note_v in_o they_o long_o ago_o and_o be_v worth_a the_o mark_v they_o undertake_v strict_a profession_n and_o show_v we_o difficult_a thing_n and_o be_v more_o familiar_o favourable_a to_o themselves_o when_o it_o come_v to_o performance_n they_o do_v thing_n gentle_a and_o possible_a digression_n 33._o concern_v auricular_a confession_n or_o shrift_n to_o a_o priest_n show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o how_o it_o be_v a_o occasion_n rather_o than_o a_o remedy_n of_o sin_n oftentimes_o 6_o touch_v the_o cast_n away_o of_o necessary_a shrift_n we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v unless_o our_o accuser_n can_v name_v some_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n have_v bind_v we_o to_o it_o which_o they_o can_v do_v for_o their_o own_o canon_n law_n gloss_n law_n de_fw-fr poenit._n d._n 5_o in_o poenitentia_fw-la gloss_n say_v it_o be_v take_v up_o only_o by_o a_o certain_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n and_o though_o the_o new_a jesuite_n and_o other_o papist_n begin_v of_o late_a with_o great_a passion_n to_o deny_v this_o affirm_v that_o christ_n ordain_v it_o in_o the_o 20._o of_o john_n yet_o that_o be_v no_o matter_n for_o necessity_n and_o shame_n have_v drive_v they_o to_o say_v so_o and_o their_o predecessor_n as_o learned_a as_o they_o have_v write_v the_o contrary_n for_o panormitan_n utriusque_fw-la panormitan_n super_fw-la 5._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la &_o remis_fw-la c._n omnes_fw-la utriusque_fw-la say_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n great_o please_v he_o because_o he_o find_v no_o manifest_a authority_n that_o ever_o god_n or_o christ_n command_v we_o to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o peresius_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n 3._o council_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la par_fw-fr 3._o consid_fw-la 3._o say_v the_o clear_a and_o plain_a manner_n of_o this_o ordinance_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o substance_n and_o circumstance_n appear_v only_o by_o a_o tradition_n and_o about_o six_o score_n year_n since_o 2._o since_o carranz_n in_o sixto_n 4._o ouand_fw-fr 4._o d._n 16._o pro._n 2._o petrus_n oxoniensis_n the_o divinity_n reader_n at_o salmanca_n public_o teach_v as_o i_o say_v that_o it_o have_v the_o beginning_n from_o a_o positive_a law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n who_o though_o he_o be_v make_v to_o recant_v this_o yet_o ibid._n yet_o ouand_fw-fr ibid._n bonaventure_n who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n honour_v for_o a_o saint_n be_v of_o his_o mind_n long_o before_o and_o salamant_fw-fr and_o refert_fw-la henri_n sum_fw-la pag_n 206._o edit_n salamant_fw-fr medina_n with_o other_o at_o this_o day_n hold_v it_o whereby_o 2._o whereby_o rhem_n annot_fw-mi joh._n 20.23_o hopk_n memor_fw-la of_o christian_n 225._o §_o 2._o their_o rashness_n appear_v that_o say_v our_o saviour_n appoint_v it_o so_o evident_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o their_o misery_n that_o be_v persuade_v by_o such_o say_n to_o believe_v it_o yea_o poenit_fw-la yea_o annot._fw-la ad_fw-la tertul_n de_fw-la poenit_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la and_o fabiol_n and_o annot._fw-la ad_fw-la hiero._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la fabiol_n erasmus_fw-la as_o learned_a papist_n as_o ever_o be_v affirm_v that_o neither_o christ_n ordain_v it_o nor_o the_o ancient_a church_n use_v it_o which_o be_v the_o truth_n for_o when_o it_o begin_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o creep_v in_o 28_o in_o socr._n l_o 5._o c._n 19_o s●zo_n l._n 7._o c._n 16._o tripart_n histo_fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 35._o niceph._n lib._n 12._o c._n 28_o nectarius_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n put_v it_o down_o in_o his_o church_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n do_v the_o like_a in_o they_o which_o the_o papist_n know_v well_o enough_o and_o 325._o and_o walden_n tom_fw-mi 2._o de_fw-fr sacr_n c_o 141._o dom._n a_o soto_n 4._o do_v 18_o q._n 1._o henri_fw-fr sum_fw-la pag._n 325._o acknowledge_v supra_fw-la acknowledge_v impudentissimu●_n illud_fw-la nectarij_fw-la factum_fw-la andr●d_n orth_n expl_a pag_n 663._o nectari●●_n a_o no●a●anis_fw-la se●uctum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la oportet_fw-la al●imare_fw-la nec_fw-la endaemonem_fw-la illum_fw-la qui_fw-la nectario_fw-la ●●asit_fw-la quin_fw-la potiùs_fw-la cacodaemonem_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la baron_fw-fr tom_n 1._o a_o 56_o nu_fw-la 28._o &_o henriq_fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la rail_v upon_o nectarius_n for_o so_o do_v which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o protestant_n reject_v shrift_n break_v no_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o refuse_v it_o the_o which_o be_v further_o prove_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o chrysostome_n antioch_n chrysostome_n hom._n 22_o ad_fw-la pop_n antioch_n say_v this_o be_v wonderful_a in_o god_n that_o he_o not_o only_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n but_o neither_o do_v he_o disclose_v they_o or_o make_v they_o know_v neither_o do_v he_o enforce_v we_o to_o come_v forth_o and_o tell_v they_o he_o require_v no_o more_o but_o that_o we_o speak_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o to_o he_o alone_o confess_v our_o fault_n this_o the_o godly_a bishop_n will_v not_o have_v do_v and_o teach_v if_o the_o confession_n have_v be_v receive_v in_o the●r_a time_n as_o necessary_a or_o if_o christ_n have_v command_v it_o or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o sovereign_a a_o remedy_n against_o sin_n 7_o and_o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n in_o lent_n afore_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n homine_fw-la sacrament_n sum._n armill_n verbo_fw-la communio_fw-la §_o ult._n caiet_fw-mi supper_n 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o pa●orm_n d●●clebrac●missat_fw-la si_fw-la 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr homine_fw-la the_o learn_a papist_n that_o ever_o be_v acknowledge_v it_o be_v a_o custom_n but_o new_o bring_v up_o though_o 255_o though_o ho●●_n memor_fw-la tract_n of_o confess_v pag_n 255_o we_o be_v call_v lewd_a preacher_n most_o wicked_o deceive_v the_o people_n because_o we_o say_v so_o but_o mark_v what_o caietan_n 4._o caietan_n in_o 3_o ●ho_n q._n 80._o art_n 4._o write_v and_o then_o judge_v what_o such_o cause_n there_o be_v why_o we_o shall_v thus_o be_v censure_v there_o appear_v no_o positive_a law_n enjoin_v shrift_n before_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o communion_n the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o prece_n pt_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v insinuate_v where_o the_o apostle_n say_v let_v a_o man_n try_v himself_o wherefore_o out_o of_o this_o document_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o seem_v unto_o i_o that_o he_o which_o be_v contrite_a for_o his_o sin_n and_o receive_v the_o communion_n without_o shrift_n sin_v not_o mortal_o though_o he_o have_v a_o confessor_n at_o hand_n the_o reason_n move_v i_o thus_o to_o think_v be_v because_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o a_o man_n have_v contrition_n for_o his_o mortal_a sin_n not_o confess_v and_o so_o receive_v do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o sin_n of_o it_o own_o kind_n yea_o to_o receive_v the_o other_o sacrament_n also_o with_o contrition_n only_o seem_v no_o where_o to_o be_v forbid_v and_o that_o which_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n must_v not_o by_o a_o superstitious_a novelty_n be_v command_v the_o papist_n therefore_o extol_v shrift_n so_o fast_o talk_v out_o of_o their_o ignorance_n not_o think_v that_o we_o know_v how_o base_o they_o think_v of_o it_o themselves_o 8_o for_o they_o not_o only_o know_v it_o to_o be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v a_o late_a tradition_n and_o custom_n
or_o no._n a_o assertion_n so_o unreasonable_a that_o some_o of_o their_o own_o doctor_n have_v forsake_v it_o and_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n our_o own_o strength_n 252._o strength_n corn._n mus._n contion_n tom_fw-mi 1._o pag._n 252._o say_v a_o bishop_n of_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o bring_v we_o back_o from_o death_n we_o can_v be_v convert_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o power_n the_o exciting_a grace_n which_o dispose_v thou_o to_o thy_o conversion_n god_n work_v in_o thou_o without_o thou_o god_n sow_v it_o in_o we_o without_o we_o but_o he_o reap_v it_o with_o we_o not_o that_o our_o cooperation_n be_v needful_a but_o that_o our_o consent_n be_v require_v when_o that_o first_o stir_v we_o up_o be_v go_v before_o our_o consent_n not_o the_o work_n of_o our_o will_n therefore_o dispose_v we_o to_o justification_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v against_o the_o merit_n of_o congruity_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o that_o grace_n depend_v not_o on_o our_o consent_n but_o go_v before_o it_o and_o work_v consent_n 65_o touch_v the_o state_n of_o regeneration_n when_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o adopt_v we_o think_v the_o will_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a condition_n that_o it_o can_v will_n and_o cooperate_v with_o god_n spirit_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n as_o a_o instrument_n of_o music_n be_v set_v in_o tune_n can_v afterward_o yield_v good_a music_n which_o before_o it_o can_v not_o and_o all_o the_o good_a that_o a_o man_n elevate_v into_o this_o state_n do_v be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o renew_a will_n as_o thing_n outward_o wrought_v by_o a_o artificer_n be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n yet_o this_o must_v be_v expound_v with_o three_o limitation_n every_o one_o whereof_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deni_v 127.1_o deni_v psal_n 127.1_o first_o that_o it_o still_o need_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o protect_v it_o as_o before_o adoption_n come_v it_o need_v his_o power_n to_o create_v it_o this_o protection_n stand_v in_o show_v the_o mind_n what_o be_v good_a and_o evil_a in_o direct_v and_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o action_n in_o govern_v and_o strengthen_v it_o that_o it_o faint_v not_o and_o put_v away_o temptation_n which_o else_o will_v hinder_v it_o be_v mutable_a against_o this_o 5._o this_o refert_fw-la bann_n 22._o q._n 24._o art_n 6._o concl_n 5._o our_o adversary_n hold_v that_o a_o man_n endue_v with_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n need_v no_o more_o but_o god_n general_a help_n to_o the_o act_n and_o exercise_n of_o his_o charity_n and_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o he_o may_v increase_v in_o charity_n without_o any_o further_a help_n yea_o that_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n prevent_v not_o the_o will_n to_o the_o do_v of_o such_o a_o act_n but_o it_o be_v the_o man_n himself_o that_o first_o deliberate_v of_o it_o the_o second_o limitation_n be_v that_o perseverance_n in_o good_a begin_v not_o in_o the_o will_n but_o in_o god_n protect_a grace_n that_o uphold_v the_o will_n from_o desist_v whence_o it_o follw_v 94.16_o follw_v mat._n 6.10_o psal_n 94.16_o that_o to_o every_o new_a work_n the_o will_n need_v a_o new_a grace_n as_o organ_n give_v sound_a no_o long_o than_o while_o the_o bellows_n be_v blow_v against_o this_o ult._n this_o bell._n the_o great_a &_o lib._n arb_n l._n 6._o c._n ult._n our_o adversary_n teach_v that_o a_o just_a man_n when_o himself_o will_v can_v practice_v any_o righteousness_n internal_a or_o external_a by_o do_v good_a work_n and_o keep_v god_n law_n neither_o need_v he_o ordinary_o any_o new_a grace_n to_o excite_v he_o but_o only_o to_o help_v he_o 6._o he_o anton._n part_n 1._o tit_n 4._o c._n 2._o §_o 6._o and_o in_o case_n of_o fall_v into_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o will_n can_v cooperate_v to_o rise_v again_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o it_o can_v do_v it_o so_o easy_o there_o be_v among_o the_o papist_n supra_fw-la papist_n bann_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la that_o think_v this_o impious_a blasphemy_n and_o savour_v of_o pelagianisme_n alphonsus_n gratia_n alphonsus_n aduer_v haeres_fw-la l._n 7._o verbo_fw-la gratia_n say_v when_o our_o will_n by_o god_n help_n have_v begin_v to_o do_v any_o good_a it_o can_v without_o the_o same_o special_a help_n prosecute_v the_o good_a begin_v nor_o persevere_v in_o it_o and_o gregorius_n ariminensis_n 95._o ariminensis_n 2._o d._n 26._o p._n 95._o write_v that_o every_o man_n in_o this_o present_a state_n be_v so_o weak_a and_o infirm_a to_o each_o good_a work_n fall_v under_o god_n law_n that_o not_o only_o to_o do_v it_o better_o and_o more_o easy_o but_o even_o simple_o to_o do_v it_o he_o need_v by_o reason_n of_o his_o infirmity_n the_o special_a aid_n of_o god_n grace_n so_o far_o forth_o that_o without_o this_o aid_n he_o can_v do_v no_o good_a 66_o the_o three_o limitation_n be_v that_o the_o will_n be_v free_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o manner_n aforesaid_a 8.18_o aforesaid_a rom._n 7.14_o &_o 23._o &_o 8.18_o yet_o can_v it_o perform_v no_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n nor_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o shall_v have_v no_o sin_n in_o it_o much_o less_o can_v it_o do_v work_n meritorious_a but_o all_o that_o regenerate_a will_n can_v do_v be_v unperfect_a and_o need_v forgiveness_n as_o i_o have_v show_v 36._o show_v digress_v 35._o &_o 36._o before_o and_o although_o 32.4_o although_o deut._n 32.4_o god_n work_n be_v perfect_a and_o undefiled_a which_o himself_o alone_o work_v out_o of_o we_o yet_o the_o thing_n he_o work_v in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n in_o this_o life_n be_v unperfect_a because_o of_o our_o flesh_n till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o next_o life_n come_v when_o that_o which_o be_v unperfect_a shall_v be_v do_v away_o and_o some_o papist_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n altisiodorensis_n 70._o altisiodorensis_n sum._n l._n 2._o tract_n 11._o p._n 70._o say_v liberty_n from_o sin_n be_v only_o in_o good_a man_n who_o god_n grace_n have_v set_v free_a not_o that_o they_o can_v sin_v but_o that_o sin_n shall_v bear_v no_o dominion_n over_o they_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v the_o contrary_a 993._o contrary_a greg._n à_fw-fr valent_n tom_n 2._o p._n 993._o that_o god_n grace_n so_o heal_v our_o nature_n that_o we_o do_v not_o only_o receive_v thereby_o a_o condition_n to_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v all_o mortal_a sin_n all_o our_o life_n long_o but_o also_o by_o our_o work_n merit_v the_o increase_n of_o grace_n and_o eternal_a life_n 1077._o life_n ib._n 1061._o &_o 1077._o 2._o 1077._o occam_n 1_o d._n 17._o q._n 2._o biel._n 2._o do_v 27._o dub_v 2._o the_o substance_n of_o which_o work_n proceed_v from_o our_o own_o freewill_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v no_o more_o but_o add_v to_o they_o a_o certain_a condition_n or_o respect_n that_o make_v they_o meritorious_a because_o as_o they_o imagine_v although_o it_o exceed_v not_o the_o faculty_n of_o our_o nature_n to_o do_v a_o good_a work_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o we_o to_o make_v the_o same_o meritorious_a unless_o god_n of_o his_o bounty_n will_v accept_v it_o 67_o and_o hitherto_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v of_o freewill_n and_o how_o the_o papist_n differ_v from_o we_o wherein_o it_o be_v singular_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o we_o have_v in_o every_o point_n the_o voice_n of_o one_o or_o other_o among_o themselves_o on_o our_o side_n and_o that_o we_o have_v not_o as_o epist_n as_o bell._n praefat_fw-la de_fw-fr lib._n ●●b_fw-la apolog_fw-la epist_n they_o malicious_o report_v we_o turn_v man_n into_o beast_n or_o stone_n by_o take_v away_o freewill_n but_o acknowledge_v it_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v all_o flesh_n unexcusable_a before_o god_n judgement_n seat_n and_o true_o have_v we_o ascribe_v somewhat_o too_o little_a to_o it_o and_o take_v from_o it_o to_o give_v the_o more_o to_o god_n grace_n yet_o be_v our_o error_n on_o the_o better_a hand_n and_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o stage_n with_o such_o outcry_n as_o if_o all_o our_o church_n be_v prove_v unholy_a thereby_o for_o a_o saint_n of_o their_o own_o by_o arb_n by_o consult_v ad_fw-la maximil_n art_n de_fw-fr lib._n arb_n the_o testimony_n of_o cassander_n who_o be_v also_o of_o his_o mind_n say_v this_o be_v the_o part_n of_o godly_a mind_a man_n to_o attribute_v nothing_o to_o themselves_o but_o all_o to_o god_n grace_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o how_o much_o soever_o a_o man_n give_v to_o grace_n yet_o in_o so_o do_v he_o depart_v not_o from_o piety_n though_o to_o do_v it_o he_o shall_v detract_v something_o from_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n and_o freewill_n but_o when_o any_o thing_n be_v take_v from_o god_n grace_n and_o
doubt_v it_o for_o revelation_n and_o miracle_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o can_v show_v none_o because_o the_o miracle_n of_o his_o legend_n which_o be_v all_o he_o can_v plead_v concern_v not_o he_o that_o never_o have_v they_o and_o yet_o he_o think_v his_o holiness_n and_o the_o holiness_n of_o his_o people_n be_v a_o good_a mark_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v false_a therefore_o that_o he_o say_v no_o man_n by_o his_o outward_a work_n without_o miracle_n can_v be_v certain_a he_o have_v faith_n or_o charity_n for_o 3.7_o for_o 1._o joh._n 3.7_o saint_n john_n say_v he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a as_o god_n be_v righteous_a and_o saint_n james_n 2.18_o james_n jac._n 2.18_o show_v i_o thy_o faith_n by_o thy_o work_n and_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o my_o faith_n by_o my_o work_n and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n 7.16_o saviour_n mat._n 7.16_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o 43._o they_o luc._n 6_o 43._o it_o be_v not_o a_o good_a tree_n that_o bring_v forth_o evil_a fruit_n nor_o a_o evil_a tree_n that_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n for_o man_n gather_v not_o fig_n of_o thorn_n nor_o grape_n of_o thistle_n a_o good_a man_n out_o of_o the_o good_a treasury_n of_o his_o heart_n bring_v forth_o good_a thing_n and_o a_o evil_a man_n out_o of_o the_o evil_a treasure_n of_o his_o heart_n bring_v forth_o evil_a and_o if_o charity_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v present_a by_o our_o work_n because_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n hide_a secret_o within_o we_o than_o no_o cause_n can_v be_v prove_v or_o know_v by_o the_o effect_n and_o no_o physician_n can_v know_v the_o inward_a state_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o outward_a sign_n which_o be_v absurd_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n call_v upon_o we_o 5.16_o we_o mat._n 5.16_o to_o let_v our_o light_n so_o shine_v afore_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v our_o good_a work_n and_o 1.10_o and_o 2._o pet._n 1.10_o bid_v we_o thereby_o to_o make_v our_o election_n sure_a and_o promise_v a_o abundant_a entrance_n into_o christ_n kingdom_n to_o all_o that_o follow_v virtue_n temperance_n patience_n etc._n etc._n shall_v deceive_v we_o if_o when_o we_o have_v take_v pain_n in_o so_o do_v we_o can_v not_o be_v assure_v that_o our_o work_n arise_v from_o faith_n without_o which_o faith_n no_o work_n be_v good_a nor_o can_v minister_v any_o argument_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o us._n 4_o our_o work_n therefore_o be_v not_o found_v on_o man_n tradition_n as_o popish_a work_n be_v nor_o direct_v to_o a_o false_a end_n but_o do_v according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n and_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o any_o opinion_n of_o perfection_n either_o to_o justify_v we_o or_o to_o merit_n or_o satisfy_v thereby_o be_v good_a work_n and_o infallible_o secure_v the_o doer_n that_o they_o have_v true_a charity_n and_o be_v the_o true_a saint_n of_o god_n though_o they_o have_v no_o miracle_n nor_o other_o revelation_n than_o this_o of_o god_n spirit_n renew_v they_o for_o of_o such_o work_v our_o adversary_n themselves_o say_v 3._o say_v tho._n lect_n 4._o in_o gal._n 3._o they_o be_v the_o execution_n and_o manifestation_n of_o our_o righteousness_n yea_o the_o divine_n of_o colen_n affirm_v express_o against_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n here_o say_v 30._o say_v antididag_n colon._n pag_n 30._o that_o we_o rely_v not_o principal_o upon_o our_o inherent_a righteousness_n because_o it_o be_v unperfect_a but_o thereby_o as_o by_o a_o certain_a inward_a experiment_n we_o be_v certify_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n who_o feel_v and_o prove_v in_o ourselves_o such_o a_o renovation_n of_o our_o spirit_n and_o that_o the_o perfect_a justice_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o and_o that_o so_o christ_n by_o faith_n dwell_v in_o us._n in_o which_o word_n affirm_v the_o experiment_n and_o certificate_n that_o god_n child_n have_v within_o they_o and_o the_o feel_n of_o their_o renovation_n and_o christ_n dwell_v in_o they_o by_o faith_n all_o which_o they_o say_v arise_v from_o their_o work_n they_o make_v it_o plain_a how_o false_a and_o frivolous_a it_o be_v that_o the_o jesuite_n assume_v that_o no_o man_n without_o revelation_n or_o miracle_n can_v infallible_o know_v whether_o he_o have_v true_a faith_n and_o love_n or_o not_o and_o i_o will_v make_v it_o yet_o plain_o in_o the_o digression_n follow_v digression_n 43._o prove_v that_o god_n child_n without_o miracle_n or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n may_v be_v and_o be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o they_o have_v grace_n and_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n 5_o for_o to_o the_o place_n of_o eccles_n 9.1_o i_o answer_v first_o the_o jesuite_n have_v misalledge_v it_o for_o the_o hebrew_n be_v thus_o no_o man_n know_v love_n or_o hatred_n all_o thing_n be_v before_o he_o and_o i_o care_v not_o though_o his_o trent-vulgar-latine_a be_v as_o he_o allege_v it_o for_o the_o hebrew_n be_v the_o only_a authentical_a text_n and_o not_o the_o latin_a whereof_o themselves_o have_v a_o base_a conceit_n though_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v canonize_v it_o for_o dominicus_n bannez_fw-fr 4_o bannez_fw-fr in_o 1._o par_fw-fr the._n q._n 1._o art_n 8._o dub_v 4_o report_v that_o since_o this_o decree_n there_o be_v not_o want_v many_o great_a man_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o correct_v and_o censure_v it_o and_o say_v the_o interpreter_n miss_v it_o foul_o in_o many_o thing_n and_o himself_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v at_o last_o convince_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n he_o judge_v the_o hebrew_n text_n uncorrupt_a what_o vanity_n therefore_o be_v it_o in_o our_o adversary_n to_o allege_v a_o translation_n which_o themselves_o despise_v as_o corrupt_v and_o vicious_a second_o to_o the_o word_n i_o answer_v that_o solomon_n do_v not_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v simple_o know_v the_o love_n or_o hatred_n of_o god_n to_o he_o but_o in_o a_o compound_n sense_n that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v it_o by_o the_o outward_a event_n of_o this_o life_n the_o which_o hinder_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n renew_v we_o as_o catharinus_n himself_o a_o papist_n expound_v it_o and_o this_o be_v it_o that_o we_o say_v 4.6_o say_v rom._n 5.5_o gal._n 4.6_o god_n love_n be_v shed_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o make_v know_v to_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 6_o to_o the_o place_n of_o prou._n 20.9_o i_o say_v brief_o that_o it_o prove_v evident_o against_o the_o jesuit_n that_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v god_n commandment_n because_o he_o can_v make_v his_o heart_n clean_o from_o sin_n but_o it_o touch_v not_o the_o assurance_n of_o grace_n because_o grace_n be_v and_o infallible_o know_v to_o be_v where_o the_o heart_n begin_v to_o be_v cleanse_v though_o yet_o as_o it_o never_o shall_v be_v in_o this_o life_n it_o be_v not_o perfect_o clean_a for_o we_o be_v not_o assure_v that_o charity_n and_o faith_n dwell_v in_o we_o by_o this_o that_o our_o heart_n be_v perfect_o clean_a for_o then_o the_o text_n have_v be_v against_o we_o but_o by_o this_o that_o they_o be_v free_a from_o hypocrisy_n and_o begin_v to_o be_v cleanse_v and_o daily_o increase_v therein_o 7_o the_o manner_n how_o we_o know_v we_o have_v grace_n and_o shall_v be_v save_v be_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o work_n it_o be_v to_o assure_v we_o the_o which_o he_o do_v first_o by_o produce_v in_o we_o the_o effect_n of_o save_a grace_n and_o predestination_n which_o be_v the_o constant_a reform_v of_o our_o life_n within_o and_o without_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o which_o give_v himself_o effectual_o and_o steadfast_o to_o a_o godly_a life_n may_v infallible_o be_v secure_v thereby_o of_o his_o salvation_n because_o god_n who_o promise_n be_v infallible_a 5.9_o infallible_a rom._n 8.13_o heb._n 5.9_o have_v vow_v salvation_n to_o all_o such_o next_o by_o infuse_v or_o inspire_v into_o we_o the_o motion_n of_o assurance_n and_o by_o incline_v our_o heart_n to_o give_v consent_n to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o which_o inspiration_n be_v a_o supernatural_a work_n of_o god_n create_v in_o we_o by_o the_o outward_a mean_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n consist_v in_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n and_o feeling_n that_o we_o have_v of_o god_n good_a pleasure_n towards_o we_o when_o once_o we_o true_o believe_v and_o as_o the_o eye_n in_o see_v have_v a_o certain_a property_n annex_v that_o it_o know_v it_o see_v so_o faith_n and_o grace_n in_o who_o soever_o it_o be_v have_v this_o condition_n that_o it_o know_v itself_o to_o be_v such_o and_o it_o not_o only_o
next_o point_n contain_v never_o a_o true_a word_n for_o not_o one_o of_o the_o person_n name_v profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v now_o hold_v trithem_n hold_v trithem_n for_o thaumaturgus_n live_v in_o the_o year_n 240._o anthony_n in_o the_o year_n 330._o and_o benet_n in_o the_o year_n 500_o all_o which_o time_n the_o present_a religion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unborn_a except_o a_o very_a few_o point_n of_o small_a moment_n bring_v in_o by_o the_o superstition_n of_o a_o few_o and_o control_v by_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o shall_v clear_o prove_v in_o the_o section_n follow_v bernard_n live_v late_a by_o 500_o year_n but_o he_o know_v not_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n he_o be_v indeed_o a_o monk_n &_o in_o many_o thing_n superstitious_a &_o what_o marvel_n live_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o he_o be_v a_o papist_n in_o none_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o religion_n for_o he_o hold_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o tradition_n justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o that_o our_o work_n merit_v not_o that_o no_o man_n can_v keep_v the_o law_n that_o a_o man_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n within_o he_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o grace_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o freewill_n as_o the_o popish_a schoolman_n teach_v he_o stand_v against_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o opinion_n touch_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o original_a sin_n as_o i_o will_v make_v good_a against_o the_o jesuite_n or_o any_o that_o will_v take_v his_o part_n who_o if_o he_o will_v deal_v faithful_o and_o to_o the_o point_n shall_v not_o say_v bernard_n profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o be_v a_o monk_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o he_o profess_v the_o present_a roman_a faith_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o jesuit_n have_v set_v it_o down_o at_o least_o in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n thereof_o which_o he_o can_v never_o do_v as_o for_o francis_n of_o assize_n who_o live_v about_o the_o same_o time_n neither_o be_v he_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a faith_n because_o it_o be_v not_o hold_v then_o as_o now_o it_o be_v though_o i_o confess_v the_o matter_n be_v not_o great_a what_o that_o 7._o that_o ecquis_fw-la credat_fw-la d._n franciscum_fw-la pediculos_fw-la semel_fw-la excussos_fw-la in_o seipsum_fw-la solitum_fw-la esse_fw-la immittere_fw-la can._n loc_fw-la l._n 11._o c._n 7._o lousy_a saint_n be_v 2_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o miracle_n whereby_o this_o jesuite_n say_v it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v testimony_n of_o these_o man_n holiness_n i_o answer_v that_o what_o be_v report_v of_o bernard_n and_o francis_n and_o dominicke_n and_o other_o of_o that_o rank_n be_v lie_n and_o device_n which_o i_o demonstrate_v by_o this_o that_o they_o be_v find_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o legend_n and_o life_n of_o saint_n write_v by_o the_o friar_n who_o authority_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o despise_v as_o i_o will_v show_v in_o the_o next_o digression_n the_o thing_n write_v of_o gregory_n &_o benet_n and_o anthony_n and_o some_o other_o of_o that_o time_n have_v more_o antiquity_n but_o no_o more_o certainty_n as_o i_o will_v likewise_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o same_o digression_n though_o allow_v much_o thereof_o to_o be_v true_a yet_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v not_o justify_v thereby_o because_o as_o i_o say_v before_o they_o be_v do_v when_o yet_o it_o be_v unhatched_a and_o rome_n profess_v another_o religion_n 3_o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v diverse_a of_o these_o be_v religious_a man_n and_o found_v religious_a order_n which_o protestant_n reject_v this_o be_v easy_o answer_v by_o tell_v he_o again_o first_o that_o if_o they_o be_v religious_a man_n &_o found_v order_n yet_o their_o so_o do_v convince_v not_o that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o faith_n for_o there_o may_v be_v order_n and_o profession_n erect_v in_o a_o contrary_a religion_n as_o the_o essen_v for_o example_n have_v their_o peculiar_a order_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o be_v i_o think_v no_o papist_n who_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o rigour_n which_o they_o profess_v a_o solitary_a nation_n 38._o nation_n plin._n l._n 5._o c._n 17._o solin_n polyhist_o c._n 38._o say_v the_o story_n of_o they_o and_o admirable_a beyond_o all_o other_o in_o the_o world_n no_o woman_n among_o they_o nor_o venery_n without_o money_n dwell_v among_o the_o tree_n it_o be_v incredible_a to_o speak_v it_o the_o nation_n be_v eternal_a through_o thousand_o of_o age_n wherein_o no_o man_n be_v bear_v so_o fruitful_a unto_o they_o be_v other_o man_n repentance_n of_o their_o life_n next_o it_o follow_v not_o because_o they_o found_v order_n of_o monk_n that_o therefore_o they_o be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o retain_v for_o they_o may_v be_v alter_v as_o indeed_o they_o be_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o three_o such_o as_o anthony_n and_o benet_n and_o eustathius_n be_v erect_v profession_n and_o order_n of_o life_n without_o warrant_n from_o the_o word_n or_o at_o least_o not_o by_o commandment_n thereof_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o use_v our_o liberty_n in_o put_v they_o away_o again_o without_o incur_v the_o censure_n lay_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o jesuite_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v have_v remember_v that_o a_o cardinal_n of_o his_o own_o church_n be_v the_o first_o that_o put_v down_o abbey_n in_o england_n digression_n 44._o answer_v that_o which_o the_o papist_n object_n touch_v the_o miracle_n of_o their_o church_n and_o the_o saint_n therein_o 4_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o first_o reveal_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o long_o after_o very_o common_o who_o proper_a end_n be_v to_o revoke_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n to_o the_o mark_v of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o accompany_v they_o that_o by_o mark_v it_o which_o they_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o have_v do_v have_v not_o the_o same_o of_o the_o preacher_n miraculous_a work_n allure_v they_o the_o efficacy_n thereof_o may_v lay_v hold_n upon_o they_o and_o convert_v they_o which_o it_o do_v whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o their_o strength_n arise_v from_o the_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o they_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o distinguish_v they_o from_o delusion_n and_o such_o like_a wonder_n as_o may_v be_v do_v by_o natural_a cause_n and_o the_o conveyance_n of_o satan_n and_o assure_v the_o beholder_n that_o their_o concurrence_n with_o so_o pure_a and_o holy_a teach_n show_v they_o to_o be_v of_o god_n for_o 1._o for_o bell._n do_v not_o eccl_n c._n 14._o &_o the_o great_a &_o lib._n arb_n l._n 6._o c._n 1._o our_o adversary_n confess_v that_o no_o miracle_n can_v certain_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o afore_o the_o church_n approve_v it_o &_o unless_o the_o will_n by_o some_o mean_v be_v incline_v to_o believe_v it_o whereby_o it_o appear_v concern_v the_o pure_a miracle_n that_o ever_o be_v that_o although_o as_o a_o sign_n they_o invite_v man_n to_o come_v and_o see_v yet_o the_o man_n be_v come_v be_v assure_v by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o what_o they_o see_v be_v a_o true_a miracle_n and_o when_o god_n withhold_v this_o efficacy_n that_o it_o incline_v not_o the_o mind_n than_o jew_n than_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n the_o man_n believe_v not_o but_o say_v they_o be_v delusion_n 5_o this_o i_o say_v to_o show_v our_o adversary_n that_o that_o they_o must_v not_o be_v offend_v if_o we_o examine_v the_o miracle_n offer_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o if_o they_o confirm_v any_o other_o doctrine_n we_o may_v safe_o reject_v they_o as_o lie_v wonder_n but_o we_o have_v a_o other_o issue_n with_o they_o easy_o to_o be_v try_v then_o this_o touch_v the_o credit_n and_o certainty_n of_o their_o miracle_n such_o i_o mean_v as_o they_o have_v to_o stand_v upon_o for_o all_o that_o they_o can_v allege_v for_o themselves_o be_v either_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o of_o their_o legend_n touch_v the_o two_o first_o we_o answer_v in_o a_o word_n that_o they_o do_v but_o trifle_v away_o the_o time_n in_o talk_v of_o they_o till_o they_o have_v prove_v their_o religion_n the_o same_o that_o those_o man_n teach_v for_o the_o miracle_n must_v be_v adjudge_v to_o that_o side_n that_o retain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v no_o portion_n in_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o that_o faith_n the_o which_o if_o he_o will_v deny_v than_o the_o trial_n must_v be_v make_v by_o the_o
scripture_n and_o he_o must_v no_o long_o say_v we_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n because_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o he_o must_v prove_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o his_o present_a roman_a church_n all_o one_o that_o afterward_o he_o may_v boast_v of_o the_o miracle_n this_o i_o say_v touch_v all_o those_o miracle_n that_o be_v true_a and_o be_v do_v indeed_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 6_o the_o thing_n therefore_o whereupon_o with_o most_o probability_n they_o can_v stand_v and_o wherein_o indeed_o they_o put_v most_o confidence_n be_v the_o miracle_n of_o their_o legend_n saint_n anthony_n benet_n francis_n dominicke_n and_o such_o like_a which_o thick_a &_o threefold_o they_o use_v to_o allege_v against_o us._n but_o we_o except_o two_o thing_n against_o they_o first_o that_o suppose_v much_o thereof_o be_v true_a yet_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v not_o necessary_o prove_v thereby_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n for_o heretic_n yea_o pagan_n may_v do_v wonderful_a thing_n to_o confirm_v their_o error_n d._n stapleton_n 627._o stapleton_n promptuat_fw-la moral_a part_n aestin_a pag._n 627._o say_v that_o for_o the_o more_o trial_n of_o the_o godly_a not_o only_a antichrist_n himself_o and_o his_o forerunner_n but_o all_o heretic_n also_o may_v do_v true_a miracle_n by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n as_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o pharaoh_n do_v the_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a by_o all_o story_n divine_a and_o humane_a that_o which_o pharaoh_n sorcerer_n and_o simon_n magus_n do_v be_v well_o know_v 22._o know_v baro._n an._n 68_o n._n 22._o the_o story_n add_v touch_v simon_n that_o he_o make_v image_n to_o walk_v and_o will_v lie_v in_o the_o fire_n without_o hurt_n and_o fly_v in_o the_o air_n and_o make_v bread_n of_o stone_n he_o can_v open_v door_n fast_o shut_v and_o unloose_v band_n of_o iron_n and_o have_v many_o shadow_n follow_v he_o as_o it_o have_v be_v man_n etc._n etc._n 4._o etc._n tacit._n l._n 4._o the_o emperor_n vespasian_n at_o alexandria_n restore_v a_o blind_a man_n to_o his_o sight_n philo●oph_n sight_n holy_a ●h_a in_o vit_fw-fr philo●oph_n empedocles_n the_o philosopher_n raise_v up_o a_o dead_a woman_n to_o life_n 4._o life_n 〈◊〉_d host_n l._n 4._o the_o like_a do_v apollonius_n tyaneus_n of_o who_o 5._o who_o lib_fw-la 4_o &_o 5._o philostratus_n and_o 202._o and_o compend_v pag._n 202._o cedrenus_n report_v great_a thing_n that_o he_o can_v deliver_v city_n from_o scorpion_n &_o serpent_n and_o earthquake_n and_o that_o be_v dead_a many_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v at_o his_o grave_n and_o cedrenus_n add_v that_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v one_o manetho_n which_o in_o these_o work_n go_v beyond_o he_o and_o by_o his_o very_a word_n can_v do_v what_o he_o list_v these_o thing_n i_o grant_v as_o the_o same_o author_n affirm_v be_v do_v by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n god_n permit_v he_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o man_n faith_n and_o punish_v of_o their_o sin_n yet_o do_v they_o well_o prove_v that_o the_o false_a church_n may_v have_v as_o strange_a miracle_n in_o it_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v and_o therefore_o such_o thing_n be_v but_o a_o weak_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n by_o unless_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n go_v before_o 7_o second_o we_o think_v the_o legend_n that_o report_v these_o miracle_n to_o be_v lie_n &_o the_o mere_a devise_n of_o man_n idle_a wit_n the_o which_o be_v prove_v by_o this_o that_o i_o can_v remember_v one_o writer_n of_o that_o sort_n who_o the_o papist_n themselves_o do_v not_o challenge_v for_o a_o liar_n and_o though_o at_o the_o first_o my_o speech_n may_v seem_v hard_a yet_o let_v the_o reason_n be_v look_v into_o whereupon_o i_o say_v it_o and_o it_o will_v prove_v itself_o again_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n claudius_n espencaeus_fw-la 21._o espencaeus_fw-la 2._o tim._n 4._o digr_n 21._o say_v no_o stable_n be_v so_o full_a of_o dung_n as_o the_o legend_n be_v full_a of_o fable_n yea_o very_a fiction_n be_v contain_v in_o their_o portess_n 6._o portess_n loc._n l._n 11_o c_o 6._o canus_n have_v a_o whole_a discourse_n of_o this_o matter_n &_o among_o other_o thing_n he_o write_v as_o follow_v the_o pagan_a historiographer_n write_v more_o true_o than_o christian_n have_v do_v the_o life_n of_o saint_n and_o suetonius_n with_o far_o less_o corruption_n set_v forth_o the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n than_o catholic_n have_v do_v the_o fact_n of_o martyr_n virgin_n and_o confessor_n they_o either_o follow_v their_o affection_n so_o or_o of_o set_a purpose_n devise_v so_o many_o fiction_n that_o it_o not_o only_o shame_v i_o but_o irk_v i_o to_o see_v they_o it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o all_o their_o narration_n be_v devise_v either_o for_o gain_v or_o error_n and_o it_o be_v a_o just_a complaint_n of_o ludovicus_n vives_z touch_v certain_a history_n devise_v in_o the_o church_n who_o wise_o &_o grave_o reprove_v such_o who_o think_v it_o a_o great_a part_n of_o piety_n to_o coin_n lie_v for_o religion_n and_o follow_v overmuch_o their_o affection_n to_o write_v thing_n not_o as_o the_o truth_n but_o as_o their_o fancy_n tell_v they_o they_o present_v we_o now_o and_o then_o with_o such_o saint_n as_o the_o saint_n themselves_o if_o they_o may_v will_v not_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n therefore_o be_v great_o hurt_v by_o these_o man_n who_o think_v they_o can_v sufficient_o set_v forth_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n unless_o they_o deck_v they_o up_o with_o feign_a miracle_n and_o revelation_n wherein_o their_o impudency_n have_v spare_v neither_o the_o bless_a virgin_n nor_o our_o lord_n himself_o to_o this_o day_n i_o can_v never_o yet_o see_v one_o story_n that_o i_o can_v allow_v neither_o do_v i_o sift_v the_o author_n of_o that_o story_n which_o be_v call_v the_o golden_a legend_n for_o in_o he_o you_o may_v read_v monster_n of_o miracle_n rather_o than_o true_a miracle_n he_o that_o write_v this_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o brazen_a face_n and_o a_o leaden_a heart_n let_v it_o be_v note_v well_o what_o this_o man_n say_v of_o all_o the_o saint-story_n without_o exception_n and_o then_o see_v upon_o what_o goodly_a ground_n the_o revelation_n of_o francis_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v build_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o infallible_a testimony_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o let_v any_o papist_n show_n if_o he_o be_v able_a that_o their_o miracle_n be_v write_v in_o any_o better_a authority_n than_o this_o that_o canus_n charge_v with_o lie_v &_o falsehood_n will_v our_o adversary_n have_v we_o such_o fool_n as_o to_o believe_v what_o themselves_o believe_v not_o for_o i_o make_v this_o offer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n free_o that_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o saint-miracle_n by_o such_o a_o author_n as_o the_o learned_a of_o his_o own_o side_n give_v credit_n to_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o refuse_v in_o nothing_o the_o say_a miracle_n shall_v be_v admit_v and_o all_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o but_o if_o himself_o think_v his_o author_n faulty_a in_o some_o thing_n i_o may_v by_o the_o same_o liberty_n refuse_v he_o in_o other_o 8_o and_o i_o add_v further_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o common_a with_o our_o adversary_n then_o at_o home_n among_o themselves_o to_o reject_v these_o very_a miracle_n which_o abroad_o in_o the_o fair_a of_o fool_n they_o set_v out_o to_o sale_n so_o buisy_o 1._o buisy_o opusc_n de_fw-fr concept_n virg_n c._n 1._o caietan_n say_v it_o can_v be_v know_v infallible_o that_o the_o miracle_n whereupon_o the_o church_n ground_v the_o canonisation_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a by_o reason_n the_o credit_n thereof_o depend_v on_o the_o report_n of_o man_n who_o may_v deceive_v other_o and_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o a_o vision_n of_o bernard_n and_o another_o of_o bridget_n be_v object_v in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o virgin_n maries_fw-fr conception_n 2._o conception_n part._n 1._o tit_n 8._o c._n 2._o antoninus_n the_o archbishop_n of_o florence_n answer_v they_o be_v fantastic_a vision_n and_o man_n dream_n and_o mark_v what_o canus_n 6._o canus_n loc._n l._n 11._o c._n 6._o say_v of_o gregory_n dialogue_n and_o bede_n history_n repute_v to_o be_v of_o the_o best_a sort_n of_o story_n that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o say_v he_o may_v i_o say_v of_o gregory_n and_o bede_n true_o and_o right_o they_o miss_v it_o now_o and_o then_o etc._n etc._n who_o write_v miracle_n talk_v of_o and_o believe_v among_o the_o vulgar_a which_o the_o censour_n of_o this_o age_n will_v think_v to_o be_v untrue_a for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o can_v better_o allow_v those_o story_n if_o the_o author_n with_o severity_n of_o judgement_n have_v join_v more_o care_n in_o choice_n this_o censure_n
spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v and_o sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o and_o origen_n 8_o origen_n cont._n cell_n l._n 8_o say_v let_v every_o man_n make_v his_o prayer_n to_o god_n in_o his_o native_a mother_n tongue_n and_o many_o learned_a papist_n confess_v 153._o confess_v lyra._n &_o tho._n &_o caiet_fw-mi upon_o 1._o cor._n 14._o eras_n declare_v ad_fw-la cens_fw-la pag._n 153._o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o long_o after_o the_o prayer_n and_o service_n be_v do_v in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n and_o that_o it_o be_v better_o for_o the_o church_n edification_n to_o have_v it_o so_o still_o cassander_n a_o great_a papist_n penult_n papist_n liturgic_n c._n 28._o &_o penult_n show_v this_o at_o large_a and_o add_v that_o diverse_a nation_n to_o this_o day_n retain_v the_o ancient_a custom_n still_o and_o never_o use_v any_o strange_a language_n in_o their_o prayer_n see_v justinian_n novel_a 123._o 3_o three_o touch_v the_o forbid_v of_o lay_v people_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n for_o 5.39_o for_o joh._n 5.39_o christ_n bid_v the_o people_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o 17.11_o and_o act._n 17.11_o the_o christian_n of_o thessalonica_n search_v they_o daily_o and_o 6.7_o and_o deut._n 6.7_o moses_n command_v all_o householder_n to_o rehearse_v they_o continual_o to_o their_o family_n and_o 3.15_o and_o 2._o tim._n 3.15_o timothy_n of_o a_o child_n be_v train_v up_o in_o they_o and_o 100_o and_o corn._n agrip._n vanit_fw-la c._n 100_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v that_o no_o christian_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o bible_n and_o chrysostome_n laz._n chrysostome_n homil._n 3_o in_o laz._n bid_v the_o lay_a people_n take_v the_o bible_n into_o their_o hand_n and_o read_v it_o and_o mat._n and_o homil._n 2._o in_o mat._n say_v the_o read_v thereof_o be_v more_o needful_a to_o they_o then_o to_o the_o monk_n and_o jerome_n paul_n jerome_n epitaph_n paul_n commend_v it_o in_o woman_n of_o his_o time_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o the_o psalm_n or_o to_o pass_v over_o any_o day_n without_o learn_v something_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o thing_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o follow_v 4_o four_o touch_v the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n for_o in_o 1.13_o in_o levit._fw-la 21.7_o 2._o reg._n 4.1_o ezek_n 24.18_o luc._n 1.13_o the_o old_a law_n priest_n and_o prophet_n have_v wife_n and_o 13.4_o and_o heb._n 13.4_o the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n paul_n be_v that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o 13.4_o all_o paphnut_n apud_fw-la sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 22._o theophyl_n in_o heb._n 13.4_o man_n tit._n man_n 1._o tim._n 3.2_o tit._n 1.6_o chrys_n hom_n 1._o in_o tit._n who_o also_o give_v order_n concern_v the_o wife_n and_o child_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v needless_a if_o they_o may_v have_v none_o and_o that_o they_o be_v ordinary_o marry_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n appear_v by_o many_o example_n mantuan_n 1._o mantuan_n fast_o l._n 1._o say_v hilary_n a_o french_a bishop_n be_v marry_v and_o that_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v lawful_a nazianzene_n monod_n nazianzene_n monod_n report_v of_o basils_n father_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n that_o in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n he_o hold_v the_o life_n and_o order_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o synesius_n the_o bishop_n of_o ptolemais_n 55._o ptolemais_n epist_n ad_fw-la euopt_n &_o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 55._o write_v thus_o of_o himself_o the_o sacred_a hand_n of_o theophylus_fw-la have_v give_v i_o a_o wife_n and_o hereupon_o i_o testify_v to_o all_o man_n that_o i_o will_v neither_o forsake_v she_o nor_o yet_o privy_o as_o a_o adulterer_n keep_v her_o company_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v god_n to_o send_v i_o by_o her_o many_o and_o good_a child_n athanasius_n dracont_n athanasius_n epist_n ad_fw-la dracont_n report_v that_o bishop_n and_o monk_n live_v marry_v and_o have_v child_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n 34._o history_n euseb_n l_o 4._o c._n 23_o socrat._n l._n 5._o c._n 22._o niceph._n l._n 12._o c._n 34._o say_v express_o that_o in_o the_o eastern_a church_n it_o be_v count_v a_o yoke_n too_o heavy_a to_o be_v lay_v on_o the_o churchman_n to_o bind_v they_o from_o marriage_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v if_o it_o please_v themselves_o avoid_v the_o company_n of_o their_o wife_n but_o no_o law_n constrain_v they_o and_o therefore_o many_o execute_v the_o place_n of_o bishop_n even_o in_o the_o house_n where_o bishop_n use_v to_o dwell_v beget_v many_o child_n of_o the_o wife_n which_o before_o time_n they_o have_v lawful_o marry_v and_o at_o this_o present_a day_n no_o bishop_n sleep_v with_o his_o wife_n be_v count_v unchaste_a final_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o 1._o that_o scot._n 4._o d._n 37._o polyd._n invent_v l._n 5._o c._n 4._o antidid_fw-la colon._n pag._n 128._o coster_n enchir._n pag._n 517._o greg._n a_o valen_n tom_n 4._o disp_n 9_o q._n 5._o punct_a 5._o §_o 1._o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o the_o apostle_n death_n they_o have_v their_o wife_n sors_z wife_n 26._o q._n 2._o sors_z that_o they_o be_v forbid_v marriage_n by_o no_o divine_a law_n but_o only_o by_o a_o humane_a constitution_n 18._o constitution_n ouan_n 4._o do_v 25._o pro_fw-la 9_o bellar._n cleric_a c._n 18._o that_o this_o constitution_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o by_o release_n the_o vow_n thom._n vow_n caiet_fw-mi quod_fw-la lib._n 1._o q._n 12._o pag._n 236._o in_o fine_a comment_n in_o 3._o part_n thom._n that_o exclude_v the_o church_n law_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o stand_v only_o to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o reason_n or_o authority_n that_o speak_v absolute_o a_o priest_n sin_v in_o marry_v but_o reason_n rather_o lead_v to_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o holy_a order_n neither_o as_o they_o be_v order_n nor_o as_o they_o be_v holy_a can_v hinder_v marriage_n 321._o marriage_n pius_fw-la 2._o epist_n 321._o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o a_o priest_n to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v though_o he_o have_v vow_v not_o to_o marry_v 200._o marry_v pius_fw-la 2._o apud_fw-la platin._n in_fw-la eius_fw-la vita_fw-la erasm_n declarat_fw-la ad_fw-la censur_fw-la paris_n pag._n 200._o that_o there_o be_v many_o reason_n to_o forbid_v priest_n marriage_n but_o more_o to_o allow_v it_o 5_o five_o touch_v image_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 25._o rome_n conc._n nicen._n 2._o act_n 7._o council_n trid._n sess_v 25._o not_o only_o worship_v they_o but_o command_v also_o to_o do_v it_o 4._o it_o conc._n trid._n ib._n suar._n to_o 1._o d._n 54._o s_o 4._o though_o 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o &_o 4._o with_o divine_a honour_n the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n himself_o contrary_n to_o the_o commandment_n which_o say_v 20.4_o say_v exod._n 20.4_o thou_o shall_v make_v to_o thyself_o no_o image_n nor_o the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o nor_o worship_n it_o and_o saint_n paul_n 1.23_o paul_n rom._n 1.23_o reprove_v such_o as_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o similitude_n of_o man_n and_o beast_n and_o fowl_n and_o 22.8_o and_o apoc._n 19.10_o &_o 22.8_o the_o apostle_n be_v rebuke_v for_o offer_v to_o have_v worship_v the_o angel_n the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n 38._o eliberis_n can._n 38._o decree_v that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o be_v adore_v which_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n joan._n wall_n ep._n ad_fw-la joan._n and_o epiphanius_n find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o down_o and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o origen_n 7._o origen_n contra_fw-la cell_n l._n 7._o say_v of_o his_o time_n we_o worship_v no_o image_n lega●_n image_n clem._n alexand_n hort_fw-mi ad_fw-la gent_n pag._n 14._o graec_fw-la minut._n fellix_fw-la octou_fw-la athenag_n lega●_n and_o the_o ancient_a christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v none_o yea_o eight_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o alij_fw-la when_o zon._n cedren_n &_o alij_fw-la the_o second_o nicene_n council_n have_v set_v up_o image_n 1._o image_n ouand_fw-fr 4._o d._n 2._o pro._n 8._o baron_fw-fr ann_n 794._o n._n 1._o a_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o frankford_n 794._o frankford_n abb._n vrsperg_n ann_n 793._o rhegin_v ann_n 794._o where_o the_o pope_n legate_n also_o be_v abrogate_a the_o decree_n thereof_o and_o by_o synod_n by_o opus_fw-la illust_n caroli_n mag._n contra_fw-la synod_n a_o book_n purposely_o write_v confute_v it_o in_o that_o book_n it_o be_v say_v 2._o say_v pag._n 486._o lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o the_o
this_o confession_n must_v necessary_o be_v grant_v to_o have_v be_v add_v successive_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n 15_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o collect_v these_o particular_n albeit_o the_o like_a may_v be_v do_v in_o many_o more_o and_o therefore_o i_o will_v show_v one_o way_n whereby_o any_o point_n of_o papistry_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v manifest_o show_v to_o be_v a_o alteration_n from_o that_o which_o be_v first_o hold_v by_o the_o true_a church_n though_o the_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o the_o change_n can_v be_v name_v and_o that_o be_v the_o uncertainty_n and_o contradiction_n among_o our_o adversary_n touch_v the_o same_o and_o the_o hold_v of_o it_o at_o one_o time_n in_o a_o far_a other_o manner_n than_o they_o do_v at_o another_o the_o which_o be_v a_o strong_a evidence_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n wit_n for_o be_v it_o the_o old_a catholic_a truth_n without_o alteration_n they_o can_v neither_o remove_v nor_o contradict_v it_o among_o themselves_o no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n hereof_o i_o will_v set_v down_o only_o two_o example_n that_o our_o adversary_n may_v see_v their_o turpitude_n and_o young_a student_n in_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v admonish_v what_o to_o observe_v in_o read_v the_o book_n of_o papist_n both_o old_a and_o new_a 16_o touch_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n use_v it_o teach_v that_o all_o image_n must_v be_v adore_v but_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n with_o the_o same_o worship_n wherewith_o we_o honour_v god_n himself_o which_o be_v divine_a honour_n and_o this_o 6_o this_o azo_n instit_fw-la l._n 9_o c_o 6_o the_o jesuite_n say_v be_v the_o constant_a opinion_n of_o all_o their_o divine_n yea_o 4._o yea_o sess_n 25._o azo_n 〈◊〉_d supra_fw-la suat_fw-la co●_n ●●●●p_n 54._o sect_n 4._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v so_o decree_v it_o but_o mark_v how_o long_o it_o be_v before_o this_o opinion_n be_v ripe_a and_o what_o uncertainty_n there_o be_v among_o themselves_o touch_v it_o for_o first_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o church_n have_v no_o image_n at_o all_o as_o i_o have_v show_v digress_v 49._o nu_fw-la 5._o then_o in_o process_n of_o time_n through_o the_o faction_n of_o private_a man_n they_o get_v in_o against_o the_o mind_n and_o good_a like_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o appear_v manifest_o by_o the_o 36._o canon_n of_o the_o elibertin_n council_n and_o the_o fact_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o when_o they_o begin_v thus_o to_o be_v let_v in_o yet_o be_v it_o only_o for_o a_o historical_a use_n and_o to_o adorn_v their_o church_n no_o worship_n at_o all_o be_v at_o the_o first_o allow_v they_o more_o than_o we_o allow_v the_o picture_n that_o be_v in_o the_o glass_n window_n of_o our_o church_n this_o day_n in_o england_n this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o record_n of_o those_o time_n convince_a our_o very_a adversary_n for_o cassander_n persuade_v by_o a_o discourse_n of_o saint_n augustine_n consult_v augustine_n consult_v conclude_v thereupon_o that_o there_o be_v no_o image_n in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o his_o diocese_n and_o polydore_n ●3_n polydore_n invent_v l._n 6._o c._n ●3_n write_v that_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n it_o appear_v how_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n vergil_n idolatry_n index_n expur_n belg._n in_o polyd._n vergil_n the_o which_o word_n the_o papist_n in_o the_o late_a edition_n of_o his_o book_n have_v blot_v out_o and_o erasmus_n cateche_n erasmus_n cateche_n say_v that_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o sound_n and_o approve_a story_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o till_o hieromes_n time_n such_o as_o be_v of_o sound_a religion_n will_v endure_v no_o image_n either_o paint_a or_o grave_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n no_o not_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o to_o put_v this_o that_o i_o say_v out_o of_o controversy_n our_o adversary_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v one_o testimony_n out_o of_o all_o antiquity_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n or_o christ_n or_o any_o saint_n be_v carve_v in_o statue_n and_o set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v adore_v and_o offer_v unto_o as_o now_o they_o be_v they_o may_v show_v certain_a picture_n and_o painting_n in_o wall_n and_o window_n for_o other_o purpose_n and_o they_o may_v muster_v up_o the_o fable_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o mother_n picture_n make_v by_o saint_n luke_n the_o image_n that_o christ_n send_v to_o abgarus_n the_o image_n erect_v by_o the_o woman_n of_o syrophaenissa_n the_o image_n make_v by_o nicodemus_n and_o such_o like_o which_o be_v either_o untrue_a or_o impertinent_a but_o one_o solid_a authority_n can_v be_v give_v against_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v our_o adversary_n have_v long_o search_v to_o find_v it_o and_o have_v weary_v themselves_o with_o contend_v about_o it_o but_o whatsoever_o they_o bring_v prove_v nothing_o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o scan_n afterward_o in_o the_o second_o nicen_n council_n by_o a_o faction_n of_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a person_n conspire_v together_o at_o the_o suggestion_n of_o a_o graceless_a empress_n and_o upon_o silly_a ground_n a_o decree_n pass_v to_o worship_v they_o the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v refuse_v as_o impious_a by_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n france_n and_o germany_n in_o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n which_o be_v a_o general_a and_o full_a council_n 1●7_n council_n abb._n vrsperg_n a_o 793._o p._n 1●7_n consist_v of_o many_o bishop_n out_o of_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o empire_n 30._o empire_n rhegnio_fw-it a_o 794_o p._n 30._o and_o the_o pope_n own_o legate_n if_o any_o will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_a council_n yea_o this_o worship_n thus_o decree_v be_v not_o allow_v long_o after_o nor_o be_v not_o to_o this_o day_n by_o many_o great_a and_o skilful_a papist_n for_o among_o the_o schoolman_n and_o late_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v 42._o be_v ho●k_v sect._n 137._o ●_o in_o sap._n dura_n 3._o d._n 9_o q._n 2._o alex._n 3._o q._n 30._o art_n 3._o mirand_n apoloog_o qu._n 3_o alphons_n haeres_fw-la verb._n adoratio_fw-la haer_fw-mi 2._o council_n mog●nt_fw-la a_o 1549._o sub_fw-la sebast_n c._n 41_o &_o 42._o diverse_a that_o say_v no_o worship_n at_o all_o be_v due_a to_o a_o image_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o worship_v it_o but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o ado●e_n christ_n and_o before_o it_o make_v our_o adoration_n to_o he_o therefore_o we_o be_v say_v to_o adore_v the_o image_n and_o yet_o 7._o yet_o act._n 4._o &_o 7._o the_o worship_n allow_v by_o that_o council_n be_v far_o short_a of_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o give_v for_o it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o be_v call_v latria_n divine_a honour_n but_o the_o lesser_a worship_n consist_v in_o the_o external_a reverence_n and_o be_v inferior_a to_o that_o which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o sampler_n and_o 17._o and_o gabr._n 3._o d._n 9_o q._n unica_fw-la concl_n 7._o &_o lect_v in_o can._n 49._o r._n aquil._n 3._o do_v 9_o petes_n tract_n de_fw-fr imag_n p._n 228._o catharin_n opusc_fw-la de_fw-fr cult_a imag_n de_fw-fr consecr_n d._n 3._o venerabiles_fw-la gl_n §._o cultu_fw-la sand._n imag_n c._n 17._o many_o of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o other_o go_v no_o further_o till_o at_o the_o last_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n valent_fw-la aquinas_n though_o part_n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o &_o ibi_fw-la caiet_fw-mi suar._n grego_n valent_fw-la the_o conceit_n wax_v big_a and_o grow_v to_o that_o which_o it_o now_o be_v that_o the_o crucifix_n and_o image_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v adore_v with_o the_o same_o honour_n that_o himself_o be_v yea_o that_o honour_n stay_v in_o the_o very_a image_n and_o by_o this_o one_o example_n the_o reader_n may_v perceive_v how_o the_o several_a article_n of_o papistry_n have_v increase_v by_o degree_n and_o how_o they_o have_v be_v hold_v at_o one_o time_n otherwise_o then_o at_o another_o the_o learned_a of_o that_o church_n always_o remove_v they_o that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a they_o shall_v be_v certain_a what_o to_o hold_v 17_o another_o example_n shall_v be_v touch_v original_a sin_n for_o our_o first_o parent_n adam_n &_o eve_n have_v sin_v against_o god_n leave_v the_o effect_n of_o that_o their_o sin_n in_o all_o mankind_n their_o posterity_n whereby_o they_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o the_o apostle_n testify_v eph._n 2.3_o this_o effect_n we_o call_v original_a sin_n and_o our_o adversary_n at_o this_o day_n define_v it_o to_o
have_v leave_v 15._o leave_v de_fw-fr occult_a philosoph_n l._n 3._o c._n 15._o write_v that_o certain_a i_o dare_v scarce_o report_v it_o my_o adversary_n be_v so_o impatient_a in_o hear_v such_o thing_n but_o yet_o i_o will_v say_v it_o again_o cornelius_n agrippa_n a_o great_a learned_a papist_n have_v leave_v it_o write_v that_o certain_a of_o the_o schoolman_n name_v thomas_n of_o aquin_n and_o aureolus_n defend_v that_o the_o very_a star_n in_o the_o firmament_n may_v be_v worship_v and_o call_v upon_o to_o help_v we_o but_o only_o for_o doubt_v of_o give_v occasion_n to_o idolatry_n not_o that_o it_o be_v idolatry_n in_o their_o conceit_n so_o to_o do_v but_o it_o may_v give_v occasion_n of_o idolatry_n possible_a as_o cut_v of_o throat_n give_v occasion_n of_o murder_n 9_o touch_v adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o jesuite_n other_o example_n of_o thing_n repute_v by_o the_o protestant_n for_o no_o small_a error_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o count_v be_v gross_a superstition_n indeed_o and_o show_v the_o time_n when_o it_o come_v in_o for_o it_o be_v a_o late_a invention_n follow_v upon_o the_o conceit_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o prescribe_v 1220._o year_n after_o christ_n by_o missarum_fw-la by_o c_o sa●e_v de_fw-fr celebrat_fw-la missarum_fw-la honorius_n the_o three_o and_o so_o be_v resist_v by_o all_o those_o that_o withstand_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o if_o we_o call_v it_o heathenish_a superstition_n thus_o to_o adore_v bread_n and_o wine_n we_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v with_o for_o if_o the_o oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 2._o wine_n jul._n firmic_n de_fw-fr erro●e_fw-fr profa_fw-la relig_n justin_n mart._n apol_n 2._o use_v by_o the_o gentile_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n to_o mithra_n be_v idolatry_n what_o be_v the_o worship_v even_o with_o divine_a honour_n of_o that_o which_o be_v no_o other_o for_o substance_n then_o that_o which_o the_o gentile_n offer_v beside_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o adoration_n depend_v upon_o the_o truth_n of_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v overthrow_v the_o adoration_n can_v be_v excuse_v and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o suppose_v there_o be_v such_o a_o presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a when_o it_o be_v that_o he_o may_v adore_v without_o error_n for_o 47._o for_o sum._n rosell_n verbo_fw-la euchar._n 3_o nu_fw-la 47._o they_o teach_v that_o the_o priest_n intention_n be_v it_o that_o work_v for_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n without_o intention_n to_o consecrate_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n he_o shall_v effect_v nothing_o 4._o nothing_o fr._n ouand_n 4._o or_o if_o he_o intend_v to_o consecrate_v but_o one_o host_n and_o there_o chance_v to_o be_v two_o or_o more_o them_z nothing_o be_v consecrate_v at_o al._n in_o which_o case_n and_o the_o like_a there_o must_v needs_o be_v idolatry_n at_o least_o sometime_o in_o the_o adoration_n because_o though_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o form_n right_o consecrate_v yet_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v consecrate_v effectual_o or_o no_o for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o them_z nothing_o be_v worship_v but_o the_o bare_a bread_n for_o remedy_v whereof_o 1_o whereof_o h●lens_n 8._o q._n 30_o memb_v 3._o art_n 1._o §._o 3._o bonave_n 3._o d._n 24._o art_n 1._o q._n 1_o they_o teach_v this_o poor_a shift_n to_o adore_v upon_o condition_n if_o the_o due_a form_n in_o consecrate_v be_v observe_v missarum_fw-la observe_v panorm_a c._n sane_n de_fw-fr celebr_fw-fr missarum_fw-la and_o they_o give_v the_o priest_n a_o item_n that_o if_o he_o be_v call_v in_o the_o night_n season_n to_o houzell_n the_o sick_a and_o there_o spend_v all_o his_o host_n then_o as_o he_o come_v homeward_o he_o must_v put_v out_o the_o candle_n and_o go_v darklong_o lest_o the_o people_n adore_v the_o empty_a tabernacle_n again_o it_o be_v 357._o be_v omnes_fw-la enim_fw-la eodem_fw-la modo_fw-la de_fw-la speciebus_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la sicut_fw-la de_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la philosophari_fw-la debent_fw-la vasq_fw-la adorat_fw-la l._n 2._o nu_fw-la 357._o confess_v that_o the_o suppose_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v adore_v with_o the_o same_o honour_n that_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n yea_o resert_n yea_o vasqu_n ib._n nu_fw-la 359._o resert_n some_o think_v without_o refer_v that_o honour_n to_o christ_n contain_v under_o they_o but_o stay_v it_o in_o the_o form_n the_o which_o be_v so_o than_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v culpable_a of_o the_o same_o idolatry_n every_o way_n that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v which_o i_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v heathenish_a 10_o that_o which_o the_o jesuite_n touch_v by_o the_o way_n how_o the_o protestant_n hold_v the_o eucharist_n real_o to_o be_v but_o a_o bare_a piece_n of_o bread_n be_v a_o lie_n because_o they_o hold_v the_o eucharist_n to_o consist_v of_o two_o part_n the_o outward_a element_n and_o the_o inward_a matter_n thereby_o confer_v to_o us._n this_o last_o we_o call_v neither_o bare_a bread_n nor_o bread_n at_o all_o but_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v give_v for_o we_o and_o it_o be_v infallible_o conjoin_v with_o the_o bread_n by_o a_o sacramental_a relation_n be_v as_o true_o present_v therewith_o to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n as_o the_o bread_n itself_o though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n for_o when_o land_n be_v convey_v by_o writing_n and_o seal_n though_o it_o be_v not_o real_o contain_v in_o the_o wax_n and_o parchment_n but_o lie_v peradventure_o a_o hundred_o mile_n off_o yet_o be_v it_o true_o present_a and_o thereby_o infallible_o give_v to_o he_o with_o who_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v account_v such_o a_o conveyance_n execute_v but_o bare_a parchment_n will_v be_v refute_v by_o every_o tenant_n in_o the_o country_n who_o esteem_v their_o lease_n to_o have_v the_o ground_n so_o unite_v to_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o bargain_n pass_v between_o their_o lord_n and_o they_o that_o thereby_o they_o can_v occupy_v it_o safe_o and_o maintain_v their_o right_n against_o all_o intruder_n that_o will_v molest_v they_o so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o sacrament_n who_o outward_a element_n if_o we_o call_v bread_n so_o do_v our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n before_o us._n for_o saint_n paul_n say_v 16_o say_v 2._o cor._n 1●_n 16_o the_o bread_n that_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o 11._o and_o 1._o cor._n 11._o so_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o justin_n martyr_n 76._o martyr_n apol._n 2._o pa●_n 76._o say_v the_o minister_n deliver_v to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a of_o the_o sanctify_a bread_n but_o bare_a bread_n we_o call_v it_o not_o save_v only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o natural_a substance_n which_o it_o retain_v even_o after_o consecration_n and_o when_o it_o be_v minister_v to_o person_n unworthy_a for_o if_o a_o conveyance_n make_v to_o peter_n lie_v upon_o the_o table_n be_v give_v to_o richard_n or_o if_o richard_n fraudulent_o take_v it_o away_o he_o receive_v nothing_o but_o bare_a wax_n and_o parchment_n by_o reason_n the_o covenant_n be_v not_o make_v with_o he_o but_o peter_n he_o be_v not_o the_o party_n that_o have_v the_o right_a though_o to_o peter_n it_o be_v a_o further_a matter_n then_o bare_a parchment_n 11_o but_o if_o the_o jesuite_n will_v needs_o have_v be_v censure_v such_o as_o speak_v undecent_o of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o may_v have_v look_v near_a home_n in_o his_o own_o church_n 1._o church_n verum_fw-la esse_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la apparitiones_fw-la posse_fw-la saepe_fw-la fieri_fw-la virtute_fw-la daemonis_fw-la suar._n tom_n 3._o l._n 55._o sect_n 1._o where_o it_o be_v hold_v that_o those_o very_a apparition_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o they_o say_v be_v sometime_o see_v and_o be_v use_v as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o real_a presence_n may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o missae_fw-la and_o ca●telae_n missae_fw-la where_o they_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n have_v receive_v his_o maker_n may_v vomit_v he_o up_o again_o and_o 2._o and_o tho._n 3._o q._n 80._o art_n 3._o ad_fw-la 3._o suar._n tom_n 3._o d._n 62._o s_o 2._o where_o it_o go_v for_o currant_n that_o a_o brute_n beast_n as_o a_o dog_n may_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n these_o speech_n be_v foul_a and_o deserve_v more_o reproof_n then_o that_o which_o say_v the_o external_a element_n in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o natural_a substance_n be_v but_o bare_a bread_n as_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n for_o natural_a substance_n be_v but_o bare_a water_n though_o by_o divine_a institution_n they_o be_v elevate_v to_o be_v the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o the_o
flesh_n of_o christ_n §_o 52._o four_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v not_o apostolic_a because_o they_o can_v derive_v their_o pedigree_n lineal_o without_o interruption_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v from_o s._n peter_n but_o be_v enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v some_o other_o as_o luther_n or_o caluin_n or_o some_o such_o from_o who_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o they_o have_v receive_v by_o succession_n the_o preacher_n of_o their_o faith_n luther_n and_o caluin_n themselves_o be_v not_o send_v of_o any_o to_o teach_v this_o new_a faith_n nor_o succeed_v lawful_o to_o any_o apostolic_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n but_o be_v as_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la say_fw-la lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la victor_n the_o donatist_n a_o heretic_n be_v filii_fw-la sine_fw-la patre_fw-la &_o discipuli_fw-la sine_fw-la magistro_fw-la child_n without_o a_o father_n scholar_n without_o a_o master_n or_o as_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n 1._o epist_n write_v of_o novatus_fw-la nemini_fw-la succ●dentes_fw-la à_fw-la seipsis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la succeed_v to_o none_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o themselves_o the_o answer_n 1_o our_o answer_n be_v that_o the_o succession_n require_v to_o make_v a_o church_n apostolic_a must_v be_v define_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o by_o the_o place_n or_o person_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o must_v be_v repute_v the_o apostle_n successor_n which_o believe_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n although_o they_o have_v not_o this_o outward_a succession_n of_o pastor_n visible_o follow_v one_o another_o in_o one_o place_n throughout_o all_o age_n as_o the_o jesuite_n say_v it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o saint_n paul_n 2.20_o paul_n ephes_n 2.20_o tell_v the_o ephesian_n they_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o call_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o lineal_o as_o the_o jesuite_n mean_v it_o descend_v from_o the_o prophet_n and_o nazianzene_n say_v athan._n say_v laud._n athan._n succession_n in_o godliness_n be_v proper_o to_o be_v account_v succession_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v also_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o succession_n as_o he_o that_o be_v against_o the_o doctrine_n must_v be_v repute_v to_o be_v also_o out_o of_o the_o succession_n which_o be_v grant_v the_o jesuite_n discourse_n about_o succession_n be_v soon_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n speak_v his_o own_o facile_fw-la own_o d._n 4._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr facile_fw-la canon_n they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o sit_v in_o their_o place_n but_o which_o do_v their_o work_n yea_o the_o jesuite_n confess_v this_o for_o possevine_a 11._o possevine_a not._n verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la pag._n 328._o ad_fw-la interrog_n 11._o write_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a not_o only_o for_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o for_o the_o consanguinity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o gregory_n of_o valenza_n 4._o valenza_n tom._n 3._o pag._n 141._o proprietas_fw-la 4._o tell_v why_o the_o church_n be_v call_v apostolic_a in_o the_o nicene_n creed_n give_v only_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o begin_v in_o the_o apostle_n next_o because_o by_o they_o it_o be_v spread_v all_o over_o the_o world_n three_o because_o it_o still_o follow_v their_o faith_n and_o authority_n waldensis_n 18._o waldensis_n tom._n 1._o doctrinal_a l._n 2._o art_n 2._o cap._n 18._o say_v the_o apostle_n fill_v the_o whole_a church_n with_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v also_o call_v apostolic_a by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o for_o the_o be_v of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o it_o hold_v the_o apostle_n faith_n though_o it_o want_v the_o jesuite_n succession_n mention_v 2_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o although_o it_o be_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v show_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o prelate_n without_o interruption_n from_o s._n peter_n which_o the_o jesuit_n say_v may_v be_v show_v but_o digress_v but_o see_v digress_v i_o deny_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o thereby_o prove_v apostolic_a unless_o these_o prelate_n have_v also_o retain_v s._n peter_n doctrine_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v all_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o that_o the_o jesuit_n succession_n and_o unity_n and_o universality_n prove_v nothing_o unless_o the_o true_a faith_n concur_v therewith_o 3_o whence_o it_o follow_v again_o that_o it_o be_v no_o disadvantage_n to_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o hold_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n they_o want_v external_a succession_n of_o place_n &_o person_n such_o as_o the_o jesuite_n boast_v of_o because_o the_o apostolicknesse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v define_v by_o it_o but_o wheresoever_o the_o true_a faith_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v profess_v and_o embrace_v there_o be_v the_o whole_a and_o full_a nature_n of_o a_o apostolic_a church_n 4_o and_o so_o i_o answer_v the_o jesuite_n discourse_n in_o particular_a that_o we_o can_v derive_v our_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o without_o interruption_n in_o that_o to_o this_o day_n it_o be_v never_o interrupt_v though_o such_o as_o succeed_v visible_o in_o bishop_n throne_n do_v not_o always_o profess_v it_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o their_o malice_n can_v never_o extinguish_v it_o and_o the_o professor_n and_o teacher_n thereof_o live_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o which_o beside_o all_o other_o testimony_n we_o know_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o can_v be_v extinguish_v but_o grow_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o her_o enemy_n 5_o and_o touch_v luther_n and_o caluin_n i_o answer_v luther_n touch_v the_o call_n of_o luther_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v against_o they_o depend_v upon_o another_o point_n which_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o they_o teach_v for_o if_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n they_o no_o doubt_n they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o teach_v it_o &_o we_o hear_v they_o receive_v it_o of_o they_o no_o otherwise_o then_o god_n faithful_a people_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v they_o succeed_v no_o apostolic_a bishop_n neither_o have_v any_o calling_n to_o preach_v that_o new_a faith_n i_o answer_v that_o for_o the_o external_a succession_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v we_o care_v not_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o in_o doctrine_n they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n and_o those_o faithful_a witness_n which_o in_o all_o age_n since_o embrace_v the_o same_o in_o persecution_n though_o they_o succeed_v not_o in_o that_o open_a manner_n that_o be_v use_v afore_o heresy_n and_o persecution_n grow_v and_o albeit_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v not_o hear_v they_o yet_o have_v they_o a_o lawful_a call_n first_o inward_o from_o god_n who_o stir_v they_o up_o give_v they_o gift_n direct_v they_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o bless_v their_o labour_n then_o outward_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o where_o they_o be_v create_v doctor_n of_o divinity_n and_o pastor_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o they_o be_v baptize_v by_o virtue_n whereof_o they_o may_v lawful_o preach_v afterward_o that_o which_o by_o the_o scripture_n they_o find_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o do_v lineal_o succeed_v the_o true_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n that_o live_v before_o they_o if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o have_v their_o call_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o will_v follow_v thereupon_o that_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n this_o be_v easy_o answer_v by_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o papacy_n be_v mingle_v together_o and_o be_v both_o call_v by_o one_o name_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n that_o in_o diverse_a thing_n that_o be_v good_a and_o indifferent_a they_o communicate_v so_o that_o even_o in_o the_o papacy_n many_o of_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n church_n remain_v as_o the_o scripture_n baptism_n and_o these_o calling_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n occupy_v do_v as_o pirate_n that_o occupy_v another_o man_n ship_n and_o his_o good_n therein_o and_o therefore_o confer_v baptism_n and_o calling_n to_o diverse_a person_n that_o afterward_o forsake_v the_o pope_n the_o say_a person_n notwithstanding_o right_o inherit_v they_o as_o the_o true_a church_n good_n which_o the_o papacy_n usurp_v and_o whereas_o the_o jesuite_n say_v they_o be_v not_o send_v to_o preach_v this_o new_a faith_n i_o answer_v he_o that_o this_o new_a faith_n as_o he_o style_v it_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n &_o therefore_o even_o that_o send_v which_o they_o have_v bind_v they_o to_o preach_v it_o though_o at_o the_o first_o it_o reveal_v it_o not_o
to_o they_o but_o god_n do_v it_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o faithful_a professor_n that_o lie_v secret_o hide_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o when_o they_o see_v the_o truth_n they_o need_v no_o other_o outward_a allowance_n to_o preach_v then_o that_o which_o they_o have_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o the_o jesuite_n will_v think_v that_o himself_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n after_o the_o order_n thereof_o with_o intent_n that_o he_o shall_v also_o profess_v that_o faith_n yet_o afterward_o fall_v to_o papistry_n need_v no_o other_o baptism_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o it_o may_v use_v the_o liberty_n of_o other_o christian_n the_o very_a same_o we_o say_v of_o luther_n and_o caluins_n calling_n whereby_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o imputation_n that_o cyprian_a and_o optatus_n lie_v upon_o the_o donatist_n for_o such_o as_o have_v no_o lawful_a admission_n be_v child_n indeed_o without_o a_o father_n and_o scholar_n without_o a_o master_n and_o bishop_n without_o succession_n or_o what_o the_o jesuite_n will_v but_o these_o man_n have_v a_o calling_n else_o let_v we_o see_v what_o will_v be_v say_v to_o that_o i_o have_v answer_v §_o 53._o this_o succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n continual_o from_o the_o apostle_n which_o we_o have_v and_o the_o protestant_n want_v the_o ancient_a father_n do_v much_o esteem_n and_o use_v as_o a_o argument_n partly_o to_o confound_v the_o heretic_n of_o those_o day_n partly_o to_o confirm_v themselves_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n prove_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n succession_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n still_o to_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n hereupon_o s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o ca._n 3._o say_v traditionem_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n &_o annuntiatam_fw-la hominibus_fw-la fidem_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la pervenientem_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la nos_fw-la indicantes_fw-la confundimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la quoquo_fw-la modo_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la svi_fw-la placentiam_fw-la malam_fw-la vel_fw-la vanam_fw-la gloriam_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la coecitatem_fw-la colligunt_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la oportet_fw-la show_v the_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o faith_n preach_v unto_o man_n come_v unto_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n we_o confound_v all_o they_o who_o any_o way_n either_o through_o evil_a complacence_n of_o themselves_o or_o through_o vainglory_n or_o through_o blindness_n and_o evil_a opinion_n do_v collect_v and_o conclude_v otherwise_o then_o they_o ought_v hereupon_o also_o say_v tertullian_n write_v against_o heretic_n edant_fw-la origines_fw-la suarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la evoluant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporun_n ista_fw-la per_fw-la successionem_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la decurrentes_fw-la ut_fw-la primus_fw-la ille_fw-la episcopus_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolis_n vel_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la viris_fw-la qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolis_n perseveraverit_fw-la authorem_fw-la habuerit_fw-la vel_fw-la antecessorem_fw-la lib._n the_o prescript_n let_v they_o set_v forth_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v or_o declare_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n so_o run_v from_o the_o begin_n by_o succession_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o their_o sect_n have_v some_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n who_o persevere_v with_o the_o apostle_n for_o his_o author_n or_o predecessor_n also_o s._n austin_n contra_fw-la epist_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o say_v tenet_n i_o in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsa_fw-la sede_fw-la petri_n apostoli_fw-la cvi_fw-la pascendas_fw-la oves_fw-la svas_fw-la dominus_fw-la commendavit_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la praesentem_fw-la episcopum_fw-la successio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la the_o succession_n of_o priest_n from_o the_o seat_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n commend_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v until_o this_o present_a bishop_n do_v hold_v i_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o same_o s._n austin_n epist_n 105._o do_v dispute_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o which_o epistle_n he_o reckon_v up_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n until_o anastasius_n who_o be_v in_o his_o time_n bishop_n in_o s._n peter_n seat_n cypr._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 6._o optat._n lib._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la the_o which_o argument_n those_o father_n will_v never_o so_o much_o have_v urge_v if_o they_o have_v not_o think_v that_o this_o succession_n be_v a_o sure_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o with_o this_o outward_a succession_n of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n be_v always_o infallible_o conjoin_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n the_o answer_n 1_o how_o much_o soever_o the_o within_o name_v father_n or_o any_o other_o stand_v upon_o the_o outward_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o their_o day_n yet_o that_o will_v do_v the_o roman_a church_n no_o good_a at_o this_o day_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o than_o none_o have_v succeed_v but_o such_o as_o keep_v the_o apostle_n faith_n which_o now_o be_v otherwise_o for_o many_o pope_n since_o that_o time_n have_v succeed_v which_o have_v be_v heretic_n as_o i_o have_v show_v digress_v 28._o this_o difference_n between_o their_o time_n and_o we_o must_v be_v diligent_o observe_v that_o the_o father_n speech_n concern_v succession_n may_v be_v right_o understand_v and_o the_o papist_n argument_n ground_v on_o they_o may_v direct_o be_v answer_v for_o irenaeus_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v say_v the_o apostolic_a tradition_n or_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n which_o they_o preach_v to_o man_n be_v come_v to_o they_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n whereby_o it_o appear_v they_o have_v not_o yet_o discover_v that_o apostasy_n in_o bishop_n throne_n which_o afterward_o ensue_v but_o the_o true_a faith_n remain_v still_o which_o now_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o do_v not_o let_v our_o adversary_n therefore_o bring_v those_o time_n back_o again_o and_o restore_v we_o the_o bishop_n that_o then_o succeed_v and_o we_o will_v allow_v they_o the_o same_o argument_n of_o succession_n that_o the_o father_n make_v or_o else_o not_o for_o hegesippus_n speak_v of_o that_o time_n 22._o time_n euseb_n hist_o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o say_v that_o as_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v teach_v so_o be_v it_o in_o every_o succession_n and_o every_o city_n now_o it_o be_v contrary_a as_o the_o friar_n and_o jesuite_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o have_v devise_v so_o be_v it_o in_o every_o succession_n and_o every_o city_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a reason_n why_o the_o father_n argument_n draw_v from_o succession_n can_v benefit_n the_o external_a succession_n of_o pope_n in_o that_o church_n at_o this_o day_n 2_o again_o they_o use_v succession_n as_o a_o argument_n to_o prove_v their_o church_n but_o not_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o our_o adversary_n use_v it_o to_o prove_v they_o for_o first_o the_o jesuit_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o by_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n the_o succession_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v to_o continue_v yea_o he_o say_v that_o with_o outward_a succession_n of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n be_v always_o infallible_o conjoin_v the_o true_a doctrine_n this_o the_o father_n never_o say_v as_o shall_v appear_v in_o my_o special_a answer_n to_o their_o word_n neither_o will_v the_o jesuite_n have_v say_v it_o himself_o if_o he_o have_v remember_v the_o greek_a church_n which_o have_v as_o lineal_a succession_n from_o saint_n mark_n and_o saint_n andrew_n as_o rome_n have_v from_o saint_n peter_n and_o yet_o 143._o yet_o can._n loc_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n ult._n pag._n 143._o they_o be_v count_v heretical_a yea_o bellarmine_n 8._o bellarmine_n not._n eccl_n c._n 8._o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o there_o where_o there_o be_v succession_n which_o show_v the_o jesuit_n rashness_n in_o his_o assertion_n for_o if_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v infallible_o conjoin_v with_o the_o outward_a succession_n than_o it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o there_o where_o succession_n be_v which_o bellarmine_n deni_v 3_o but_o with_o succession_n of_o person_n the_o father_n always_o join_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o by_o they_o both_o together_o confute_v schismatics_n thus_o do_v irenaeus_n in_o the_o very_a word_n allege_v and_o 43._o and_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o in_o another_o place_n more_o full_o we_o must_v say_v he_o obey_v those_o elder_n which_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopric_n have_v receive_v the_o certain_a gift_n of_o truth_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n which_o want_v this_o principal_a succession_n we_o must_v suspect_v they_o mark_v how_o he_o direct_v you_o to_o embrace_v that_o succession_n which_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n also_o and_o refuse_v that_o which_o have_v it_o not_o which_o have_v be_v idle_a if_o the_o doctrine_n have_v be_v so_o unite_v to_o succession_n that_o it_o
therein_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n 3_o the_o which_o thing_n when_o martin_n luther_n and_o our_o father_n do_v they_o find_v out_o no_o new_a way_n of_o their_o own_o but_o open_v the_o old_a which_o the_o papacy_n have_v forsake_v neither_o do_v we_o think_v they_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o they_o only_o find_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o wisdom_n and_o the_o same_o faith_n to_o have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n before_o they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v only_o as_o that_o company_n how_o great_a or_o how_o small_a soever_o which_o embrace_v our_o religion_n be_v distinguish_v against_o the_o other_o which_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o papistry_n so_o we_o say_v confident_o it_o only_o be_v wise_a and_o in_o the_o right_a way_n and_o it_o only_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o please_v god_n leave_v the_o other_o side_n to_o his_o judgement_n that_o best_o know_v what_o they_o be_v 4_o and_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n urge_v the_o matter_n touch_v our_o forefather_n so_o importunate_o be_v so_o many_o million_o of_o our_o ancestor_n many_o whereof_o be_v innocent_a and_o virtuous_a liver_n and_o some_o whereof_o shed_v their_o blood_n for_o christ_n sake_n be_v all_o these_o hate_v of_o god_n do_v all_o these_o perish_v be_v all_o these_o damn_v i_o answer_v not_o one_o of_o they_o perish_v that_o be_v thus_o qualify_v but_o they_o be_v undoubted_o save_v every_o mother_n son_n of_o they_o that_o live_v thus_o virtuous_o and_o innocent_o shed_v their_o blood_n for_o christ_n sake_n but_o be_v the_o jesuite_n or_o any_o man_n so_o fantastical_a as_o to_o think_v these_o million_o be_v papist_n what_o tridentine_n and_o jesuited_a papist_n when_o the_o modern_a papacy_n complete_a as_o it_o be_v be_v not_o yet_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a but_o young_a than_o martin_n luther_n himself_o but_o whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o so_o follow_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o point_n thereof_o and_o hate_a and_o persecute_v the_o faith_n contrary_a thereunto_o we_o say_v as_o saint_n paul_n do_v 2.10_o do_v 2._o th._n 2.10_o they_o perish_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v and_o therefore_o god_n send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n that_o they_o may_v all_o be_v damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o religion_n be_v antichrist_n we_o say_v all_o that_o obey_v the_o same_o be_v eternal_o damn_v for_o the_o scripture_n teach_v 9_o teach_v apoc._n 14_o 9_o that_o if_o any_o man_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o his_o forehead_n or_o in_o his_o hand_n the_o same_o shall_v drink_v of_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n and_o this_o assertion_n be_v neither_o impious_a cruel_a nor_o incredible_a because_o god_n have_v speak_v it_o who_o just_a judgement_n regard_v not_o multitude_n if_o they_o live_v in_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n refuse_v and_o persecute_v the_o truth_n offer_v they_o be_v they_o never_o so_o great_a and_o frequent_a as_o it_o spare_v not_o the_o old_a world_n or_o sodom_n or_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o wilderness_n or_o the_o gentile_n that_o know_v not_o god_n who_o number_n far_o exceed_v those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 5_o again_o for_o a_o further_a answer_n to_o this_o question_n be_v all_o our_o forefather_n live_v under_o the_o papacy_n damn_v we_o must_v distinguish_v for_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o capital_a and_o substantial_a not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n needful_a to_o salvation_n but_o also_o hinder_v the_o mean_n and_o way_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v partly_o without_o partly_o within_o ourselves_o for_o the_o bring_v we_o thereunto_o of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o image_n justification_n by_o work_n merit_n the_o abolish_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o preach_v and_o such_o like_a some_o be_v not_o so_o principal_a but_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o denial_n of_o small_a truth_n like_o the_o hay_n and_o stubble_n which_o saint_n paul_n 3.12_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 3.12_o mention_v that_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n and_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n other_o circumstance_n remove_v destroy_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a pilgrimage_n fast_v day_n vow_n and_o all_o those_o custom_n that_o stand_v only_o in_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n again_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o hold_v a_o error_n wilful_o and_o obstinate_o join_v the_o profession_n thereof_o with_o the_o hatred_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o err_v ignorant_o be_v seduce_v by_o such_o as_o teach_v he_o with_o a_o mind_n notwithstanding_o always_o ready_a to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n whensoever_o he_o shall_v be_v further_o enlighten_v these_o distinction_n be_v premise_v i_o answer_v that_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o papacy_n the_o most_o people_n err_v in_o the_o late_a kind_n the_o great_a error_n be_v either_o not_o general_o receive_v or_o not_o distinct_o know_v by_o the_o people_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o five_o 7._o five_o sacramental_a tit_n 1._o c._n 7._o waldensis_n note_v that_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n be_v little_o know_v and_o although_o by_o reason_n they_o want_v teach_v they_o err_v in_o many_o thing_n &_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o time_n yet_o again_o they_o see_v &_o mislike_v many_o thing_n &_o when_o they_o die_v because_o they_o mistrust_v the_o present_a course_n they_o will_v renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o saint_n cross_n image_n merit_n &_o such_o like_a &_o confess_v they_o look_v to_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n alone_o which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n beside_o they_o see_v into_o many_o thing_n that_o be_v then_o do_v and_o in_o their_o judgement_n condemn_v they_o carrying_z a_o mind_n always_o ready_a to_o be_v teach_v though_o the_o stream_n of_o time_n carry_v they_o away_o 867._o away_o illyric_n catal_a tom_fw-mi 2._o p._n 867._o thus_o domitius_n calderinus_n a_o learned_a man_n when_o he_o go_v to_o mass_n have_v a_o usual_a say_n let_v we_o go_v to_o the_o common_a error_n and_o all_o story_n be_v full_a of_o thing_n show_v this_o to_o be_v true_a they_o see_v the_o pope_n tyranny_n note_v the_o covetousness_n pride_n and_o ambition_n of_o the_o clergy_n they_o espy_v the_o pack_v of_o their_o priest_n and_o friar_n they_o groan_v under_o innumerable_a grievance_n which_o they_o can_v not_o redress_v and_o very_o few_o among_o they_o all_o hold_v papistry_n in_o form_n whereupon_o neither_o have_v the_o jesuite_n any_o reason_n to_o say_v all_o be_v papist_n such_o as_o himself_o neither_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o condemn_v they_o all_o but_o as_o saint_n cyprian_n 3._o cyprian_n epist_n 3._o say_v in_o a_o certain_a epistle_n if_o any_o that_o go_v b_o before_o we_o either_o of_o ignorance_n or_o simplicity_n have_v not_o observe_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n command_v his_o simplicity_n through_o the_o lord_n indulgence_n may_v be_v pardon_v but_o we_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v teach_v &_o instruct_v can_v be_v pardon_v out_o of_o which_o word_n we_o see_v what_o to_o judge_v of_o such_o multitude_n as_o err_v of_o ignorance_n and_o go_v after_o the_o the_o pope_n 15.11_o pope_n 2._o sam._n 15.11_o as_o david_n subject_n do_v after_o absalon_n in_o his_o rebellion_n in_o their_o simplicity_n know_v nothing_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n that_o both_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n and_o hate_v the_o truth_n as_o our_o adversary_n in_o our_o country_n this_o day_n do_v blaspheme_v the_o way_n of_o god_n hate_v instruction_n stop_v their_o ear_n against_o the_o word_n that_o we_o offer_v they_o and_z carrying_z themselves_o obstinate_o and_o malicious_o against_o we_o and_o so_o die_v in_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n we_o say_v without_o impiety_n they_o be_v go_v to_o eternal_a fire_n according_a to_o that_o which_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v reveal_v §_o 62._o nay_o sure_o i_o be_o rather_o to_o think_v that_o you_o be_v unwise_a who_o pretend_v to_o travel_v towards_o the_o happy_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o go_v to_o that_o glorious_a city_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n will_v leave_v the_o beat_a street_n in_o which_o all_o those_o have_v walk_v that_o ever_o heretofore_o go_v thither_o who_o by_o miracle_n as_o it_o be_v by_o letter_n send_v from_o
lenity_n to_o reduce_n again_o their_o seduce_a neighbour_n bear_v with_o their_o frowardness_n and_o pray_v instant_o for_o their_o conversion_n if_o at_o any_o time_n it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o release_v they_o of_o their_o error_n and_o to_o give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n by_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o roman_a emissary_n which_o have_v make_v they_o their_o ward_n that_o they_o may_v possess_v they_o and_o prey_n upon_o they_o and_o let_v they_o final_o with_o faithfulness_n and_o instance_n pray_v god_n for_o the_o state_n wherein_o we_o live_v so_o pitiful_o vex_v with_o the_o discontent_n and_o fury_n of_o those_o that_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n who_o if_o they_o have_v any_o dram_n of_o religion_n or_o conscience_n in_o they_o will_v not_o thus_o practice_v to_o make_v their_o own_o dear_a country_n a_o theatre_n of_o such_o tragedy_n as_o the_o world_n never_o see_v before_o but_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o therefore_o let_v every_o man_n eschue_v his_o own_o evil_n seek_v that_o way_n to_o confirm_v himself_o and_o the_o church_n wherein_o he_o live_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v show_v mercy_n and_o peace_n in_o our_o day_n amen_n finis_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o several_a matter_n and_o question_n handle_v and_o dispute_v in_o this_o book_n the_o first_o number_n signify_v the_o section_n the_o second_o the_o number_n of_o the_o section_n where_o the_o number_n be_v but_o one_o there_o the_o whole_a section_n be_v mean_v a._n abbey_n see_v monk_n and_o monastery_n accident_n in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o they_o inhere_o 35_o 21._o how_o they_o have_v power_n to_o nourish_v breed_v corrupt_v etc._n etc._n ibid._n adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n when_o it_o be_v bring_v in_o 51.9_o absurdity_n about_o it_o ibid._n alteration_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v alter_v from_o that_o which_o it_o hold_v in_o ancient_a time_n digress_v 23._o see_v roman_a church_n anastasius_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr vitis_n rom._n pontificum_fw-la censure_v 55.7_o antiquity_n of_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n demonstrate_v 44.1_o apocrypha_fw-la not_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n 35_o 20._o appeal_v to_o rome_n forbid_v 36.27_o apostolic_a how_o the_o church_n be_v apostolic_a 52.1_o arnulfus_n his_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n 50.28_o auricular_a confession_n just_o reject_v by_o the_o protestant_n 40.6_o the_o primitive_a church_n use_v it_o not_o ibid._n it_o be_v the_o occasion_n and_o mean_n of_o contrive_v the_o horrible_a sin_n that_o be_v 40.9_o the_o say_n of_o chaucer_n touch_v it_o ibid._n not_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o papist_n touch_v the_o time_n when_o it_o be_v institute_v 35.20_o and_o 40.6_o and_o 58.7_o whether_o it_o be_v simple_o needful_a 40.7.8_o austin_n the_o monk_n convert_v not_o england_n 49._o author_n of_o sin_n god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n 40.50_o how_o god_n will_v sin_n ibid._n touch_v this_o point_n the_o papist_n have_v belie_v we_o and_o say_v themselves_o as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v ibid._n b._n berengatius_n 50.30_o bishop_n lay_v man_n sometime_o make_v bishop_n 5.11_o the_o bishop_n oath_n make_v to_o the_o pope_n 31.6_o titular_a bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 31.5_o book_n the_o practice_n of_o papist_n in_o purge_v of_o book_n 35.18_o boy_n pope_n of_o rome_n 55.7_o c._n call_v of_o the_o protestant_a minister_n how_o demonstrate_v 52.5_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o pastor_n have_v a_o calling_n 58.1_o what_o call_v the_o protestant_n pastor_n have_v ib._n they_o need_v no_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o and_o why_o 59_o canonise_a see_v saint_n catholic_a the_o romish_a church_n not_o catholic_a in_o place_n 46.2_o nor_o in_o doctrine_n and_o time_n 46.3_o century_n how_o they_o have_v take_v exception_n against_o the_o father_n 44.3_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n see_v salvation_n church_n our_o faith_n be_v not_o last_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 6.9_o how_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o rule_n 13.1_o by_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n mean_v the_o pope_n digress_v 16._o why_o the_o papist_n devolue_v all_o power_n so_o to_o the_o church_n digress_v 16._o how_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o err_v 14.2_o and_o 15.6_o &_o 25.2_o the_o church_n militant_a may_v err_v 14.2_o &_o inde_fw-la &_o 15.6_o the_o church_n be_v the_o subordinate_a mean_n to_o teach_v man_n and_o how_o 18.5_o &_o 27.1_o church_n visible_a the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n between_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o touch_v the_o visiblenesse_n of_o the_o church_n 17.1_o and_o digress_v 17._o &_o 22._o the_o papist_n confess_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o touch_v the_o church_n be_v sometime_o invisible_a as_o we_o do_v digress_v 17._o the_o church_n be_v not_o always_o visible_a 18._o the_o argument_n against_o this_o answer_v from_o §_o 18._o to_o 24._o the_o papist_n say_v the_o church_n when_o christ_n suffer_v be_v in_o the_o virgin_n marie_n alone_o 17.3_o the_o protestant_n church_n have_v always_o be_v digress_v 48._o mark_v of_o the_o church_n the_o sacrament_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o right_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n 24.1_o and_o digress_v 18._o the_o argument_n against_o this_o be_v answer_v from_o 26._o to_o 32._o how_o the_o teach_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v examine_v 30._o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n assign_v by_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o sufficient_a 32._o how_o the_o church_n move_v saint_n austin_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n digress_v 19_o change_v of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a faith_n see_v alteration_n and_o roman_a church_n clergy_n the_o vileness_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n note_v 38.5_o how_o the_o papist_n excuse_v it_o 38.7_o communion_n see_v sacrament_n commandment_n of_o god_n see_v law_n congruity_n see_v merit_n of_o congruity_n conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n without_o sin_n a_o new_a doctrine_n 47.2_o consultation_n not_o debar_v though_o man_n have_v no_o freewill_n 40.48_o conversion_n of_o country_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n how_o it_o be_v 49.4_o contention_n what_o the_o contention_n be_v wherewith_o our_o church_n can_v true_o be_v charge_v 33.2_o the_o church_n be_v never_o free_a from_o all_o contention_n digress_v 21._o grievous_a contention_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n ibid._n discourse_v touch_v the_o contention_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n digress_v 24._o they_o say_v they_o contend_v not_o in_o dogmatic_a point_n answer_v 35.19_o counsel_n above_o the_o pope_n 36.28.30_o the_o pope_n not_o precedent_n in_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n 36.29_o they_o may_v err_v 15.6_o &_o 44_o 6._o they_o be_v call_v in_o ancient_a time_n by_o the_o emperor_n or_o civil_a magistrate_n 36.28_o d._n decree_n of_o god_n incline_v and_o order_v man_n will_n 40.47_o descension_n of_o christ_n soul_n into_o hell_n deny_v by_o papist_n 35._o ●0_n doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n see_v papistry_n e._n easter_n contention_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n about_o the_o keep_n of_o it_o 33.4_o &_o 36.3_o election_n be_v not_o for_o work_v foresee_v 40.49_o how_o a_o man_n may_v know_v if_o he_o be_v elect_v 41.7_o england_n not_o first_o convert_v by_o austin_n the_o monk_n 49_o nor_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ibid._n err_v the_o church_n may_v err_v &_o how_o 14.2_o &_o 15.6_o &_o 25.2_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v even_o judicial_o and_o be_v a_o heretic_n 55.8_o and_o digress_v 28._o counsel_n may_v err_v 15.6_o &_o 44.6_o and_o so_o have_v the_o father_n 44.5_o eucharist_n how_o christ_n be_v present_a therein_o explicate_v 51.10_o vile_a speech_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v it_o 51.11_o euerard_n the_o bishop_n of_o salisborow_n his_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n 50.33_o examine_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o man_n to_o be_v examine_v ●0_n f_o faith_n must_v be_v build_v on_o the_o scripture_n 1.1_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n on_o tradition_n 1.3_o it_o must_v be_v explicit_a 2.1_o what_o enfold_v faith_n be_v 2.2_o in_fw-it mark_fw-mi x._o &_o pag._n 6._o num_fw-la 6._o dispute_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n forbid_v by_o the_o papist_n 2.4_o the_o collier_n faith_n what_o 2.6_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n 5.5_o and_o not_o of_o the_o church_n digress_v 6._o &_o 11._o i'faith_o how_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n 25_o 1._o see_v church_n i'faith_o only_o justifi_v expound_v and_o defend_v digress_v 40._o justify_v faith_n describe_v 40.39_o a_o man_n may_v know_v if_o he_o have_v faith_n 41.3_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n how_o it_o begin_v to_o fail_v 50_o 4._o how_o the_o modern_a roman_a faith_n grow_v in_o the_o church_n 58.1_o fast_v digress_v 32._o the_o protestant_n maintain_v fast_v ibid._n the_o
42.11_o mortal_a sin_n digress_v 38._o see_v sin_n monastery_n be_v first_o throw_v down_o by_o papist_n 42.10_o of_o vile_a report_n in_o their_o time_n 42.12_o the_o testimony_n of_o diverse_a old_a writer_n touch_v the_o life_n of_o cloisterer_n digress_v 45._o a_o brag_n that_o the_o papist_n make_v touch_v the_o order_n of_o bennet_n 42.13_o n_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n expound_v and_o handle_v digress_v 34._o note_n of_o the_o church_n see_v church_n o_o obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o so_o great_a as_o the_o papist_n object_n digress_v 8._o why_o they_o make_v folk_n believe_v they_o be_v so_o obscure_a digress_v 9_o see_v scripture_n occam_n the_o schoolman_n 50.35_o only_o faith_n see_v faith_n only_o opinion_n variable_a exceed_o among_o the_o papist_n 35.21_o the_o say_n that_o they_o vary_v not_o in_o dogmatic_a point_n answer_v 35.19_o original_a sin_n no_o agreement_n among_o the_o papist_n touch_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o 50.17_o original_a text_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a which_o be_v free_a from_o all_o corruption_n 6.11_o and_o 35.3_o p_o painter_n the_o painter_n jest_n 38.6_o paint_v christ_n arm_n for_o what_o use_n 40.35_o papist_n famous_a for_o control_v reject_v censure_v and_o purge_v one_o another_o 44.14_o a_o example_n of_o their_o impudent_a denial_n of_o all_o antiquity_n 44.15_o &_o 50.18_o they_o wipe_v our_o name_n out_o of_o book_n 45.2_o papistry_n be_v a_o complete_a doctrine_n of_o liberty_n and_o a_o mere_a witty_a device_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o ambition_n and_o pleasure_n 43.3_o and_o digress_v 46._o a_o new_a religion_n 48.1_o pardon_n when_o and_o how_o they_o come_v in_o 50.8_o they_o release_v all_o satisfaction_n 40.33_o the_o treasury_n whence_o they_o rise_v nu_fw-la 34._o a_o view_n of_o long_a pardon_n grant_v for_o short_a service_n nu_fw-la 35._o penance_n the_o papist_n can_v tell_v when_o it_o be_v ordain_v nor_o by_o what_o scripture_n it_o be_v prove_v digress_v 55._o peter_n receive_v no_o more_o power_n over_o the_o church_n than_o the_o other_o disciple_n do_v dispute_v 36.12_o &_o inde_fw-la the_o papist_n be_v not_o agree_v how_o his_o supremacy_n be_v prove_v or_o what_o it_o contain_v 36.39_o &_o inde_fw-la pope_n make_v judge_v of_o our_o faith_n 5.8_o and_o over_o the_o father_n 44.11_o his_o judgement_n be_v not_o receive_v as_o the_o rule_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n digress_v 25._o but_o be_v be_v resist_v ibid._n the_o papist_n themselves_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o his_o judgement_n 36.8_o many_o pope_n depose_v nu_fw-la 8._o what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o common_o be_v nu_fw-la 9_o he_o be_v tie_v to_o his_o own_o province_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 36.26_o he_o may_v err_v see_v err_v he_o call_v himself_o s._n peter_n 36.38_o pope_n what_o kind_n of_o man_n &_o how_o they_o have_v be_v choose_v 55.9_o many_o at_o once_o nu_fw-la 10._o the_o life_n of_o some_o of_o they_o describe_v 57.9_o how_o the_o pope_n sin_n be_v excuse_v 57.11_o pope_n succession_n he_o be_v not_o s._n peter_n successor_n digress_v 29._o if_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o effectual_o prove_v to_o succeed_v s._n peter_n in_o the_o conceit_a primacy_n all_o papistry_n will_v fall_v 36.24_o prayer_n in_o latin_a mislike_v by_o some_o papist_n 35.20_o long_o pardon_n promise_v to_o short_a prayer_n 40.35_o predestination_n our_o doctrine_n touch_v this_o point_n be_v belie_v by_o the_o papist_n 40.43_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o lay_v down_o n._n 44._o it_o impose_v no_o natural_a necessity_n upon_o the_o second_o cause_n ibid._n the_o reconciliation_n of_o it_o and_o free_a will_n nu_fw-la 45_o 46._o the_o papist_n make_v the_o will_n of_o man_n as_o subject_a to_o god_n decree_n as_o we_o do_v num_fw-la 46_o 47._o it_o be_v not_o for_o work_v foresee_v numb_a 49._o presidencie_n over_o counsel_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o old_a 36.29_o priest_n power_n to_o remit_v sin_n deny_v by_o learned_a papist_n 35.20_o this_o power_n handle_v digress_v 55._o their_o marriage_n allow_v in_o ancient_a time_n 47.4_o the_o foulness_n of_o their_o life_n note_v in_o the_o papacy_n 38.5_o a_o silly_a priest_n that_o believe_v all_o be_v true_a that_o be_v print_v 42.8_o purge_v of_o book_n the_o papist_n practice_n 35.18_o puritan_n that_o name_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o papist_n 40.19_o q._n qvestion_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v decide_v by_o the_o scripture_n digres_n 3._o no_o end_n of_o question_n among_o the_o schoolman_n 35.21_o r._n read_v the_o scripture_n forbid_v by_o the_o papist_n 2.3_o the_o lie_v people_n do_v read_v they_o in_o ancient_a time_n 47.3_o rebaptization_n a_o point_n wherein_o there_o be_v much_o contention_n 36.4_o reprobation_n not_o for_o work_v foresee_v 40.49_o religious_a man_n &_o order_n see_v monk_n resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n see_v faith_n roman_a church_n how_o the_o world_n in_o former_a time_n communicate_v with_o it_o 46.2_o the_o greek_n refuse_v it_o ibid._n how_o it_o increase_v 47.1_o when_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n begin_v to_o be_v alter_v into_o that_o which_o now_o be_v therein_o 50.4_o &_o inde_fw-la resistance_n make_v against_o the_o change_n nu_fw-la 5._o one_o mean_v whereby_o it_o may_v evident_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v change_v the_o old_a faith_n nu_fw-la 15._o a_o full_a demonstration_n of_o the_o resistance_n make_v in_o all_o age_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n alteration_n digress_v 52._o the_o objection_n that_o be_v make_v against_o the_o catalogue_n be_v answer_v nu_fw-la 40._o the_o roman_a church_n alter_v the_o faith_n by_o little_a and_o little_a how_o it_o be_v mean_v 51.3_o how_o the_o father_n praise_v the_o roman_a church_n 56.1_o how_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n grow_v 58.1_o the_o papist_n absurd_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o roman_a church_n 13.3_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v certain_a 3.1_o such_o a_o rule_n be_v simple_o necessary_a ibid._n but_o not_o reveal_v to_o all_o ibid._n it_o have_v five_o property_n 4.1_o the_o scripture_n be_v it_o ibid._n and_o the_o papist_n can_v deny_v it_o 4.6_o how_o we_o call_v the_o translate_v scripture_n the_o rule_n 6.1_o the_o rule_n be_v easy_a though_o some_o mean_n be_v needful_a to_o learn_v it_o 7.2_o and_o 8.10_o how_o the_o doctrine_n or_o teach_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v call_v the_o rule_n 13.1_o see_v church_n s._n sacrament_n seven_o sacrament_n merry_o prove_v in_o a_o sermon_n at_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 8.15_o how_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n see_v church_n sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n against_o antiquity_n 35.11_o and_o 47_o 7._o in_o both_o kind_n best_o 35.20_o our_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n lay_v down_o and_o how_o christ_n be_v present_a therein_o 51.10_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n 47.9_o saint_n what_o kind_n of_o saint_n the_o protestant_n have_v 39.1_o and_o what_o kind_n the_o papist_n 39.2_o &_o 41.1_o objection_n against_o the_o pope_n canonise_a of_o saint_n 39.3_o the_o papist_n claim_v kindred_n of_o many_o saint_n that_o never_o know_v the_o popish_a religion_n 42.1_o salvation_n a_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v thereof_o 35.20_o &_o by_o what_o mean_v 40.39_o the_o papist_n not_o able_a to_o deny_v this_o 41.10_o sanctification_n of_o life_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n digress_v 34._o satisfaction_n what_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n we_o require_v and_o teach_v digres_n 39_o and_o what_o kind_n the_o papist_n ibid._n the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n touch_v satisfaction_n 40.28_o note_v what_o the_o papist_n teach_v concern_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o work_n nu_fw-la 30._o our_o work_n satisfy_v not_o nu_fw-la 31._o the_o papist_n play_v with_o their_o satisfaction_n nu_fw-la 33._o pardon_n release_v all_o satisfaction_n num_fw-la 30._o a_o view_n of_o the_o papist_n uncertainty_n and_o contradiction_n in_o this_o question_n of_o satisfaction_n num_fw-la 34._o scripture_n the_o people_n allow_v to_o read_v it_o in_o ancient_a time_n 47.3_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o letter_n send_v from_o god_n to_o man_n 62.2_o the_o papist_n forbid_v the_o read_n of_o they_o 2.3_o and_o dispute_v of_o they_o num_fw-la 4._o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o needful_a num_fw-la 7._o they_o be_v easy_a to_o such_o as_o have_v the_o mean_n 4.2_o it_o only_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 4.1_o and_o 10.1_o and_o 34.1_o the_o true_a cause_n why_o the_o papist_n disable_v the_o scripture_n from_o be_v the_o rule_n digress_v 4_o it_o must_v be_v translate_v see_v translation_n it_o be_v not_o obscure_a 7.2_o digress_v 8._o but_o only_a in_o two_o case_n 8.1_o how_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v attain_v 8.2_o it_o contain_v all_o thing_n needful_a nu_fw-la 3._o why_o learned_a man_n vary_v
decree_n how_o reconcile_v together_o 40._o 45._o touch_v freewill_n and_o the_o determination_n thereof_o by_o god_n providence_n 40._o 46_o predestination_n not_o for_o work_v foresee_v 40._o 49._o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n the_o papist_n in_o this_o point_n go_v as_o far_o as_o the_o protestant_n 40._o 50._o again_o touch_v freewill_n at_o large_a show_v all_o the_o question_n in_o that_o point_n 40._o 52._o &_o inde_fw-la wherein_o true_a holiness_n stand_v 41._o 1._o how_o good_a work_v become_v a_o infallible_a sign_n of_o true_a holiness_n 41._o touch_v the_o certainty_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n the_o point_n explicate_v 41._o 5._o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n no_o good_a 42._o 1._o the_o ancient_a monk_n be_v not_o like_o the_o modern_a 42._o 3._o touch_v miracle_n object_v by_o the_o papist_n a_o answer_n 42._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la incredible_a miracle_n and_o ridiculous_a report_v 42._o 8._o the_o abuse_n of_o monk_n and_o monastery_n detect_v 42._o 10._o a_o proof_n that_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n exclude_v liberty_n of_o the_o flesh_n 43._o 2._o the_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v a_o occasion_n of_o their_o sinful_a life_n 43._o 3._o some_o point_n of_o papistry_n name_v that_o invite_v man_n to_o liberty_n 43._o 5._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o roman_a faith_n a_o mere_a device_n invent_v to_o maintain_v ambition_n and_o covetousness_n 43._o 7._o the_o universality_n of_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v show_v and_o expound_v 44._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v the_o ancient_a father_n their_o authority_n and_o usage_n with_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n compare_v 44._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la who_o be_v father_n with_o the_o papist_n and_o who_o all_o the_o father_n 44._o 9_o the_o pope_n usher_n the_o father_n 44._o 11._o the_o papist_n be_v notorious_a for_o contemn_v all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n exemplify_v 44._o 12._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o protestant_n answer_v to_o they_o that_o bid_v they_o show_v their_o church_n in_o all_o age_n 45._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o papist_n have_v not_o the_o church_n catholic_a either_o in_o time_n or_o place_n 46._o the_o roman_a church_n have_v forsake_v her_o ancient_a faith_n 47._o &_o inde_fw-la transubstantiation_n a_o late_a device_n 47._o 8._o 9_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n have_v convert_v no_o country_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n 48._o 1._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o indies_n know_v the_o true_a faith_n afore_o the_o papist_n come_v there_o 48._o 3._o touch_v the_o conversion_n of_o england_n by_o austin_n the_o monk_n 49._o how_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v convert_v the_o indies_n spanish_a massacre_n 49._o 5._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o question_n when_o do_v the_o faith_n fail_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n answer_v and_o dispute_v 50._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o time_n &_o manner_n of_o the_o come_n in_o of_o some_o point_n in_o papistry_n 50._o 8._o &_o inde_fw-la the_o resistance_n make_v in_o former_a time_n against_o the_o papacy_n with_o a_o catalogue_n 50_o 18._o &_o inde_fw-la a_o answer_n to_o some_o thing_n object_v against_o the_o former_a catalogue_n 50._o 40._o papistry_n come_v in_o secret_o and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a expound_v 51._o 2._o 3._o image_n notorious_o resist_v when_o they_o come_v in_o 51._o 5._o the_o papist_n worship_n stock_n and_o stone_n as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n 51._o 6._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 51._o 9_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n explicate_v as_o we_o hold_v it_o 51._o 10._o the_o papist_n have_v write_v most_o spiteful_o against_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n 51._o 11._o succession_n be_v in_o our_o church_n and_o of_o what_o kind_n it_o be_v 52._o 1._o the_o calling_n of_o luther_n and_o our_o bishop_n justify_v and_o declare_v 52._o 5._o the_o father_n commend_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o their_o time_n do_v not_o help_v it_o now_o 53._o the_o place_n produce_v out_o of_o they_o be_v answer_v 53._o 5._o ephes_n 4.11_o allege_a to_o prove_v outward_a succession_n answer_v 54._o 2._o 3._o externall_n succession_n of_o person_n in_o one_o place_n be_v neither_o only_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o there_o at_o all_o 55._o 2._o seven_o thing_n object_v against_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n to_o show_v it_o have_v be_v gross_o interrupt_v 55._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la touch_v the_o credit_n of_o anastasius_n book_n of_o the_o pope_n life_n 55._o 7._o it_o be_v not_o know_v who_o succeed_v peter_n 55._o 5._o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v long_o void_a 55._o 6._o a_o woman_n be_v pope_n 55._o 7._o heretic_n have_v be_v pope_n and_o intruder_n and_o boy_n 55._o 8._o 9_o pope_n have_v be_v make_v and_o cast_v out_o again_o at_o the_o will_v of_o famous_a whore_n 55._o 9_o pope_n for_o wickedness_n more_o than_o monstrous_a 55._o 9_o many_o pope_n at_o one_o time_n and_o the_o right_a pope_n not_o know_v 55._o 10._o the_o father_n commendation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n expound_v 56._o imputation_n lay_v upon_o the_o protestant_n as_o if_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o church_n answer_v 57_o 1_o 2._o luther_n defend_v touch_v his_o departure_n from_o the_o pope_n his_o writing_n his_o life_n his_o marriage_n and_o his_o death_n 57_o 3._o &_o inde_fw-la monster_n of_o lie_n devise_v against_o luther_n 57_o 7._o luther_n a_o honest_a man_n than_o any_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o many_o more_o 57_o 9_o again_o the_o call_n of_o our_o minister_n be_v defend_v 58._o touch_v the_o power_n of_o a_o priest_n in_o remit_v sin_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n 58._o 4._o &_o inde_fw-la miracle_n not_o concur_v with_o all_o extraordinary_a call_n 59_o 1._o extraordinary_a calling_n distinguish_v 59_o 2._o luther_n need_v no_o miracle_n and_o why_o 59_o 3._o all_o man_n have_v not_o be_v in_o love_n with_o papistry_n 60._o the_o objection_n that_o luther_n make_v to_o himself_o when_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o pope_n 61._o 1._o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o forsake_v the_o high-beaten-way_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 61._o 2._o touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o ancestor_n under_o the_o papacy_n 61._o 4._o the_o scriptuy_n be_v sure_a token_n of_o the_o truth_n then_o the_o popish_a miracle_n 62._o a_o brief_a exhortation_n of_o the_o author_n to_o his_o countryman_n 63._o a_o table_n of_o the_o digression_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n with_o their_o title_n the_o number_n set_v before_o signify_v the_o number_n of_o the_o digression_n the_o number_n follow_v signify_v the_o §._o under_o which_o it_o stand_v 1._o prove_v that_o the_o papist_n ground_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n on_o tradition_n make_v they_o equal_a to_o the_o write_a word_n 1._o 2._o show_v the_o enfold_v faith_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o confute_v the_o same_o as_o not_o entire_a 2._o 3._o wherein_o by_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o reason_n and_o the_o papist_n own_o confession_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 5._o 4._o contain_v the_o very_a cause_n why_o the_o papist_n disable_v the_o scripture_n so_o from_o be_v the_o rule_n 5._o 5._o wherein_o against_o the_o jesuit_n conceit_n secret_o imply_v in_o his_o first_o conclusion_n it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o mother_n tongue_n and_o so_o read_v indifferent_o by_o the_o lie_v people_n of_o all_o sort_n 5._o 6._o declare_v how_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o build_v on_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o on_o the_o illumination_n of_o god_n spirit_n shine_v in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o 6._o 7._o wherein_o the_o trent-vulgar-latine_a and_o our_o english_a translation_n be_v brief_o compare_v together_o 6._o 8._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o obscure_a but_o that_o they_o plain_o determine_v all_o appoint_v of_o faith_n 7._o 9_o declare_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v reason_n to_o hold_v the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a because_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v hardly_o or_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v find_v therein_o 7._o 10._o assign_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o man_n error_n in_o expound_v the_o scripture_n 8._o 11._o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n itself_o have_v that_o outward_a authority_n whereupon_o our_o faith_n be_v build_v and_o not_o the_o church_n 8._o 12._o wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o scripture_n prove_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n 9_o 13._o show_v against_o the_o jesuit_n assumption_n that_o all_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v sufficient_o determine_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o papist_n call_v so_o fast_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o 14._o